Project
Gutenberg Consortia
Center's
World Public
Library Collection
Project Gutenberg Consortia Center Collection, a member of the World
Public Library,http://WorldLibrary.net,
bringing the world's eBook collections together.
Conditions
of Use:
This
eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with
this eBook or full complete details are online at: http://gutenberg.net/license.
Here are 3 of the more major items to consider:
The eBooks
on the PG sites are not 100% public domain, some of them are copyrighted
and used by permission and thus you may charge for redistribution
only via direct permission from the copyright holders.
Project
Gutenberg is a registered trademark [TM]. For any other purpose
than to redistribute eBooks containing the entire Project Gutenberg
file free of charge and with the headers intact, permission is
required.
The public
domain status is per U.S. copyright law. This eBook is from the
Project Gutenberg Consortia Center of the United States.
The mission of the Project Gutenberg Consortia Center is to provide
a similar framework for the collection of eBook collections as does
Project Gutenberg for single eBooks, operating under the practices,
and general guidelines of Project Gutenberg. The major additional
function of Project Gutenberg Consortia Center is to manage the addition
of large collections of eBooks from other eBook creation and collection
centers around the world.
For more great classic literature visit:
The
World Public Library and Project Gutenberg Consortia Center, bringing
the world's eBook collections together http://www.Gutenberg.us
High upon a rock, poised like a bird for flight, stark naked, his
satin skin shining like gold and silver in the rising sun, stood a
youth, tall, slim of body, not fully developed but with muscles
promising, in their faultless, gently swelling outline, strength and
suppleness to an unusual degree. Gazing down into the pool formed by
an eddy of the river twenty feet below him, he stood as if calculating
the distance, his profile turned toward the man who had just emerged
from the bushes and was standing on the sandy strand of the river,
paddle in hand, looking up at him with an expression of wonder and
delight in his eyes.
"Ye gods, what a picture!" said the man to himself.
Noiselessly, as if fearing to send the youth off in flight, he laid
his paddle on the sand, hurriedly felt in his pockets, and swore to
himself vigorously when he could find no sketch book there.
"What a pose! What an Apollo!" he muttered.
The sunlight glistening on the beautiful white skin lay like pools
of gold in the curving hollows of the perfectly modelled body, and
ran like silver over the rounded swellings of the limbs. Instinct
with life he seemed, something in his pose suggesting that he had
either alighted from the golden, ambient air, or was about to commit
himself to it. The man on the sand continued to gaze as if he were
beholding a creature of another world.
"Oh, Lord! What lines!" he breathed.
Slowly the youth began to move his arms up to the horizontal, then
to the perpendicular, reaching to the utmost of his height upon his
toe tips, breathing deep the while. Smoothly, slowly, the muscles in
legs and thighs, in back, in abdomen, in chest, responding to the
exercise moved under the lustrous skin as if themselves were living
things. Over and over again the action was repeated, the muscles and
body moving in rhythmic harmony like some perfect mechanism running in
a bath of oil.
"Ye gods of Greece!" breathed the man. "What is this thing I see?
Flesh or spirit? Man or god?" Again he swore at himself for
neglecting to bring his sketch book and pencil.
"Hello, father! Where are you?" A girl's voice rang out, high,
clear, and near at hand.
"Good Lord!" said the man to himself, glancing up at the poised
figure. "I must stop her."
One startled glance the youth flung down upon him, another in the
direction of the voice, then, like a white, gleaming arrow he shot
down, and disappeared in the dark pool below.
With his eyes upon the water the man awaited his reappearing. A
half minute, a full minute he waited, but in vain. Swiftly he ran
toward the edge of the pool. There was no sign anywhere of the
youth.
Ghastly pale and panting, the man ran, as far round the base of the
rock as the water would allow him, seeking everywhere signs of the
swimmer.
"Hello, father! Oh, there you are!" Breaking through the bushes,
a girl ran to him.
"What is it, pater? You are ill. What is the matter?"
"Good heavens! he was there!" gasped the man, pointing to the high
rock. "He plunged in there." He pointed to the pool. "He hasn't
come up. He is drowned."
"Who? What are you saying? Wake up, father. Who was there?"
"A boy! A young man! He disappeared down there."
"A young man? Was he--was he--dressed?" inquired the girl.
"Dressed? No. No."
"Did he--did he--hear me--calling?"
"Of course he did. That's what startled him, I imagine. Poor boy!
I fear he is gone."
"Did he fall in, or did he dive?"
"He seemed to dive, but he has not come up. I fear he is gone."
"Oh, nonsense, father," said the girl. "I bet you he has swum
round the bend. Just go over the rock and see."
"God grant it!" said her father.
He dropped his paddle, ran up over the rock and down into the
little dell on the other side that ran down to the water's edge.
There he saw a tent, with all the accompaniments of a well ordered
camp, and a man cooking breakfast on a small fire.
"Well, I'll be combusticated!" he said to himself, weakly holding
to a little poplar tree.
"I say!" he cried, "where is he? Has he come in? Is he all
right?"
"Who?" said the man at the fire.
"The boy on the rock."
The man gazed at him astonished, then as if suddenly grasping his
meaning, replied,
"Yes, he came in. He's dressing in the tent."
"Well, I'll be condumbusticated!" said the man. "Say! what the
devil does he mean by scaring people out of their senses in that
way!"
The man at the fire stood gazing at him in an utterly bewildered
way.
"If you will tell me exactly what you are after, I may be able to
help you."
The other drew slowly near the fire. He was still pale, and
breathing quickly.
"Hello, dad, is breakfast ready?" came a cheery voice from the
tent.
"Thank God, he is alive apparently," said the man, sinking down on
a log beside the fire. "You must pardon me, sir," he said. "You
see, I saw him take a header into the pool from that high rock over
yonder, and he never came up again. I thought he was drowned."
The man at the fire smiled.
"The young villain gave you a fright, did he? One of his usual
tricks. Well, as his father, and more or less responsible for him, I
offer the most humble apology. Have you had breakfast?"
"Yes. But why did he do such a thing?"
"Ask him. Here he comes."
Out from the tent came the youth in shorts, the warm glow of his
body showing through the filmy material.
"Hello!" he cried, backing toward the tent door. "You are the man
with the paddle. Is there by any chance a lady with you, or did I
hear a lady's voice over there? I assure you I got a deuce of a
fright."
"You gave me the supreme fright of my life, young man, I can tell
you that."
"But I surely heard a lady's voice," said the youth.
"You did. It was my daughter's voice, and it was she who suggested
that you had swum around the bend. And she sent me over here to
investigate."
"Oh, your daughter. Excuse me," said the youth. "I shall be out
in a few minutes." He slid into the tent, and did not reappear.
The man remained chatting with the youth's father for a few
minutes, then rising said,
"Well, I feel better. I confess this thing gave me something of a
shock. But come round and see us before we go. We shall be leaving
in an hour."
The man at the fire promised to make the visit, and the other took
his departure.
A few minutes later the youth reappeared.
"Is breakfast ready?" he cried. "My, but I'm hungry! But who is
he, dad?"
"Sit down," said his father, "and get your breakfast while it is
hot."
"But who is he, dad?" persisted the youth.
"Who is he?" said his father, dishing up the bacon. "An oil
explorer, an artist, a capitalist, an American from Pittsburgh, the
father of one child, a girl. Her mother is dead. Nineteen years
old, athletic, modern type, college bred, 'boss of the show'
(quotation). These are a few of the facts volunteered within the
limited space of his visit."
"What's he like, dad?"
"Like? Like an American."
"Now, dad, don't allow your old British prejudices to run away with
your judgment."
"On the contrary, I am perfectly charmed. He is one of those
Americans who capture you at once, educated, frank, open, with that
peculiar charm that Britishers will not be able to develop for many
generations. An American, but not of the unspeakable type. Not at
all. You will like him."
"I am sure I shall," replied the youth. "I liked his voice and his
face. I like the Americans. I met such nice chaps at college. So
clever, and with such a vocabulary."
"Vocabulary? Well, I'm not too sure as to the vocabulary part of
it."
"Yes, such bright, pat, expressive slang, so fresh and in such
variety. So different from your heavy British slang, in which
everything approaching the superlative must be one of three things,
'ripping,' with very distinct articulation on the double p, or 'top
hole,' or 'awfully jolly.' More recently, I believe, a fourth
variation is allowed in 'priceless.'
"Ah, my boy, you have unconsciously uttered a most searching
criticism on your American friends. Don't you know that a vocabulary
rich in slang is poverty stricken in forceful and well chosen English?
The wealth of the one is the poverty of the other."
"Where is he going?" enquired the boy.
"Out by way of Edmonton, Calgary, Moose Jaw, Minneapolis, so on to
Pittsburgh. Partner with him, young lawyer, expert in mines,
unmarried. He is coming back in a couple of months or so for a big
hunt. Wants us to join him. Really extraordinary, when you come to
think of it, how much information he was able to convey in such a
short space of time. Marvellous gift of expression!"
"What did you say, dad?"
"Say? Oh, as to his invitation! Why, I believe I accepted, my
boy. It seemed as if I could do nothing else. It's a way he has."
"Is--is the daughter to be along?"
"Let me see. What did he say? Really, I don't know. But I should
judge that it would be entirely as she wished. She is--"
"Boss of the show, eh?"
"Exactly. Most vivid phrase, eh?"
"Very. And no doubt aptly descriptive of the fact."
In half an hour the breakfast was finished, and the elder man got
his pipe a-going.
"Now, dad, you had better go along and make your call, while I get
things together here."
"What! You not going! No, no, that won't do, my boy. It was
about you they were concerned. You were the occasion of the
acquaintanceship. Besides, meeting in the wilderness this way we
can't do that sort of thing, you know."
"Well, dad, frankly, I am quite terrified of the young lady.
Suppose she should start bossing us. We should both be quite
helpless."
"Oh, nonsense, boy! Come along. Get your hat."
"All right, I'll come. On your head be the consequences, dad. No.
I don't need a hat. Fortunately I put on a clean shirt. Will I do,
dad? You know I'm 'scairt stiff,' as Harry Hobbs would say."
His father looked him over, but there was nothing critical in his
glance. Pride and love filled his eyes as they ran over his son's
face and figure. And small wonder! The youth was good to look upon.
A shade under six feet he stood, straight and slim, strength and
supple grace in every move of his body. His face was beautiful with
the beauty of features, clean cut and strong, but more with the beauty
of a clear, candid soul. He seemed to radiate an atmosphere of cheery
good nature and unspoiled simplicity. He was two years past his
majority, yet he carried the air of a youth of eighteen, in which
shyness and fearlessness looked out from his deep blue eyes. It was
well that he wore no hat to hide the mass of rich brown hair that
waved back from his forehead.
"You'll do, boy," said his father, in a voice whose rigid evenness
of tone revealed the emotion it sought to conceal. "You'll take all
the shine from me, you young beggar," he added in a tone of gruff
banter, "but there was a time--"
"WAS a time, dad? IS, and don't tell me you don't know it. I
always feel like a school kid in any company when you're about.
'When the sun comes out All the little stars run in,'"
he sang from a late music hall effusion. "Why, just come here and
look at yourself," and the boy's eyes dwelt with affectionate pride
upon his father.
It was easy to see where the boy got his perfect form. Not so tall
as his son, he was more firmly knit, and with a kind of dainty
neatness in his appearance which suggested the beau in earlier days.
But there was nothing of weakness about the erect, trim figure. A
second glance discovered a depth of chest, a thickness of shoulder and
of thigh, and a general development of muscle such as a ring champion
might show; and, indeed, it was his achievements in the ring rather
than in the class lists that won for Dick Dunbar in his college days
his highest fame. And though his fifty years had slowed somewhat the
speed of foot and hand, the eye was as sure as ever, and but little of
the natural force was abated which once had made him the glory of the
Cambridge sporting youth, and which even yet could test his son's
mettle in a fast bout.
On the sandy shore of the river below the eddy, they found the
American and his party gathered, with their stuff ranged about them
ready for the canoes.
"Ah, here you are, sir," said the American, advancing hat in hand.
"And this is your son, the young rascal who came mighty near giving
me heart failure this morning. By the way, I haven't the pleasure of
knowing your name."
"My name is Richard Dunbar, and this is my son Barry."
"My name is Osborne Howland, of Pittsburgh, and this is my daughter
Paula. In bloomers, as you see, but nevertheless my daughter. Meet
also my friend and partner, Mr. Cornwall Brand."
The party exchanged greetings, and spent some moments giving
utterance to those platitudes which are so useful in such
circumstances, a sort of mental marking time preparatory to further
mutual acquaintance.
The girl possessed that striking, dashing kind of brunette beauty
that goes with good health, good living, and abundance of outdoor
exercise. She carried herself with that air of assured self-
confidence that comes as the result of a somewhat wide experience of
men, women and things. She quite evidently scorned the conventions,
as her garb, being quite masculine, her speech being outspoken and
decorated with the newest and most ingenious slang, her whole manner
being frankly impulsive, loudly proclaimed.
But Barry liked her at once, and made no pretence of concealing his
liking. To her father, also, he was immediately drawn. As to
Cornwall Brand, between whom and the girl there seemed to exist a
sort of understanding, he was not so sure.
For half an hour or so they stood by the river exchanging their
experiences in these northern wilds, and their views upon life in the
wilderness and upon things in general. By a little skilful managing
the girl got the young man away from the others, and then proceeded to
dissect and classify him.
Through the open woods along the river bank they wandered, pausing
here and there to admire the view, until they came to an overhanging
bank at the entrance to a somewhat deep gorge, through which the
river foamed to the boiling rapids below. It was indeed a beautiful
scene. The banks of the river were covered with every variety of
shrub and tree, except where the black rocks broke through; between
the banks the dark river raged and fretted itself into a foam against
its rocky barriers; over them arched the sky, a perfect blue.
"What a lovely view!" exclaimed the girl, seating herself upon the
edge of the bank. "Now," she said, "tell me about yourself. You
gave my pater a fearful fright this morning. He was quite paralysed
when I came on him."
"I am very sorry," said the youth, "but I had no intention--"
"I know. I told him not to worry," replied the girl. "I knew you
would be all right."
"And how, pray?" said the young man, blushing at the memory of his
startling appearance upon that rock.
"I knew that any fellow who could take that dive wouldn't likely
let himself drown. I guessed, too, that if you heard me hoot--"
"I did," said the youth.
"You sure would get slippy right away."
"I did."
"I guess you were pretty well startled yourself, weren't you?" said
the girl, pursuing the subject with cool persistence.
"Rather," said the young man, blushing more violently, and wishing
she would change the subject. "You are going out?" he enquired.
"Yes."
"To-day?"
"Now--right away."
"Too bad," he said, his disappointment evident in his tone.
"When are you going out? But who are you, anyway?" asked the girl.
"You have to tell me that."
"My life story, so to speak?"
She nodded.
"It's very short and simple, like the annals of the poor," he
replied. "From England in infancy, on a ranch in northern Alberta
for ten years, a puny little wretch I was, terribly bothered with
asthma, then"--the boy hesitated a moment--"my mother died, father
moved to Edmonton, lived there for five years, thence to Wapiti, away
northwest of Edmonton, our present home, prepared for college by my
father, university course in Winnipeg, graduated in theology a year
ago, now the missionary in charge of Wapiti and the surrounding
district."
"A preacher!" said the girl, her face and her tone showing her
disappointment only too plainly.
"Not much of a preacher, I fear," said the young man with a smile.
"A missionary, rather. That's my story."
She noticed with some chagrin that he did not ask for hers.
"What are you doing here?" she enquired.
He hesitated a moment or two.
"Dad and I always take a trip into the wilds every summer." Then
he added after a few moments' pause, "But of course we have other
business on hand up here."
"Business? Up here?"
"Yes. Dad has some." He made as if to continue, but changed his
mind and fell into silence, leaving her piqued by his reserve and by
his apparent indifference to the things concerning herself. She did
not know that he was eagerly hoping that she would supply this
information.
At length he ventured, "Must you go away to-day?"
"I don't suppose there's any 'must' about it."
"Why not stay?"
"Why should I?"
"Oh, it would be jolly," he cried. "You see, we could--explore
about here--and,"--he ended rather lamely,--"it's a lovely country."
"We've seen a lot of it. It IS lovely," she said, her eyes upon
his face as if appraising him. "I should like to know you better,"
she added, with sudden and characteristic frankness, "so I think we
will stay. But you will have to be awfully good to me."
"Why, of course," he cried. "That's splendid! Perfectly jolly!"
"Then we had better find father and tell him. Come along," she
ordered, and led the way back to the camp.
The young man followed her, wondering at her, and giving slight
heed to the chatter she flung over her shoulder at him as she strode
along through the bushes.
"What's the matter with you?" she cried, facing round upon him.
"You were thinking about me, I know. Confess, now."
"I was," he acknowledged, smiling at her.
"What were you thinking? Tell me," she insisted.
"I was thinking--" He paused.
"Go on!" she cried.
"I was thinking of what your father said about you."
"My father? About me? What did he say? To you?"
"No. To dad."
"What was it? Tell me. I must know." She was very imperious in
her manner. The youth only smiled at her.
"Go on!" she said impatiently.
"I think possibly your father was right," he replied, "when he said
you 'boss the show.'"
"Oh, that's what he said, eh? Well, I guess he's about right."
"But you don't really?"
"Don't what? 'Boss the show'? Well, I boss my own show, at any
rate. Don't you?"
"Don't I what, exactly? Boss the show? Well, I don't think we
have any 'show,' and I don't believe we have any 'boss.' Dad and I
just talk things over, you see."
"But," she insisted, "some one in the last analysis must decide.
Your menage, no matter how simple, must have a head. It is a law of
the universe itself, and it is the law of mankind. You see, I have
done some political economy."
"And yet," said the young man, "you say you run your own show?"
"Exactly. Every social organism must have a head, but every
individual in the organism must live its own free life. That is true
democracy. But of course you don't understand democracy, you
Canadians."
"Aha! There you are! You Americans are the most insular of all
the great peoples of the world. You know nothing of other people.
You know only your own history and not even that correctly, your own
geography, and your own political science. You know nothing of
Canada. You don't know, for instance, that the purest form of
democracy on this American continent lies outside the bounds of the
U. S. A."
"In Canada?" she asked scornfully. "By the way, how many Canadians
are there?"
"Yes, I know. We are a small people," he said quietly, "but no
more real democracy exists anywhere in the world than in this country
of mine. We are a small people, but," he said, with a sweep of his
hand toward the west and the north, "the future is with us. The day
is coming when along this waterway great cities shall be, with
factories and humming industries. These plains, these flowing hills
will be the home of millions of men, and in my lifetime, too."
His eyes began to glow, his face to shine with a rare and
fascinating beauty.
"Do you know the statistics of your country? Do you know that
during the last twenty years the rate of Canada's growth was three
times greater than ever in the history of the United States? You are
a great commercial nation, but do you know that the per capita rate of
Canada's trade to-day is many times that of the United States? You
are a great agricultural people, but do you know that three-quarters
of the wheat land on this continent is Canadian, and that before many
years you will be coming to Canada for your wheat, yes, and for your
flour? Do you see that river? Do you know that Canada is the richest
country in the world in water power? And more than that, in the
things essential to national greatness,--not these things that you can
see, these material things," he said, sweeping his hand contemptuously
toward the horizon, "but in such things as educational standards, in
administration of justice, in the customs of a liberty loving people,
in religious privileges, in everything that goes to make character and
morale, Canada has already laid the foundations of a great nation."
He stopped short, abashed, the glow fading from his face, the light
from his eyes.
"Forgive me," he said, with a little laugh. "I am a first class
ass. I fear I was blowing like a fog horn. But when you touch
Canada you release something in me."
While he was speaking her eyes never left his face. "Go on!" she
said, in a voice of suppressed emotion, "go on. I love to hear you."
Her wonted poise was gone; she was obviously stirred with deep
emotion.
"Go on!" she commanded, laying her hand upon his arm. "Don't stop.
Tell me more about--about Canada, about anything," she added
impatiently.
A warm, eager light filled her eyes. She was biting her lips to
still their tremor.
"There's plenty to tell about Canada," he said, "but not now. What
started me? Oh, democracy. Yes, it was you that began it.
Democracy? After all, it is worth while that the people who are one
day to fill this wide land should be truly democratic, truly free, and
truly great."
Once more the light began to burn in his eyes and in his face.
"Ah, to have a hand in that!"
"And you," she said in a low voice, "you with all that in you, are
only a preacher."
"A missionary," he corrected.
"Well, a missionary. Only a missionary."
Disappointment and scorn were all too evident in her voice.
"ONLY a missionary. Ah, if I could only be one. A missionary!
With a mission and a message to my people! If only I had the gift of
tongues, of flaming, burning, illuminating speech, of heart-
compelling speech! To tell my people how to make this country truly
great and truly free, how to keep it free from the sordid things, the
cruel things, the unjust, the unclean, the loathsome things that have
debased and degraded the older nations, that are debasing and
degrading even your young, great nation. Ah, to be a missionary with
a tongue of fire, with a message of light! A missionary to my people
to help them to high and worthy living, to help them to God! ONLY a
missionary! What would you have me? A money-maker?"
He turned swiftly upon her, a magnetic, compelling personality.
From the furious scorn in his voice and in his flaming face she
visibly shrank, almost as if he had struck her.
"No!" she breathed. "Nothing else. Only a missionary."
Silent she stood, as if still under the spell of his words, her
eyes devouring his face.
"How your mother would have loved you, would have been proud of
you," she said in a low tone. "Is--is there no one else to--to
rejoice in you?" she asked shyly, but eagerly.
He laughed aloud. "There's dad, dear old dad."
"And no one else?" Still with shy, eager eyes she held him.
"Oh, heaps," he cried, still laughing.
She smiled upon him, a slightly uncertain smile, and yet as if his
answer somehow satisfied her.
"Good-bye," she said impulsively, offering her hand.
"But you are not going! You're staying a few days!" he gasped.
"No, we're going. We're going right away. Goodbye," she said. "I
don't want those others to see. Goodbye. Oh, it's been a wonderful
morning! And,--and--a friend is a wonderful discovery."
Her hand held his in a strong, warm grasp, but her eyes searched
his face as if seeking something she greatly desired.
"Good-bye. I am sorry you are going," he said, simply. "I want to
know you better."
"Do you?" she cried, with a sudden eagerness in her voice and
manner. Then, "No. You would be disappointed. I am not of your
world. But you shall see me again," she added, as if taking a new
resolve. "We are coming back on a big hunt, and you and your father
are to join us. Won't you?"
"Dad said we should," said the youth, smiling at the remembrance.
"And you?" she said, with a touch of impatience.
"If things can so arrange themselves--my work, I mean, and dad's."
"But, do you want to? Do you really want to?" she asked. "I wish
I knew. I hate not to understand people. You are hard to know. I
don't know you. But you will come?"
"I think so," said the young man. "Of course a fellow's work comes
first, you know."
"Work?" she cried. "Your work? Oh, your missionary work. Oh,
yes, yes. I should like to see you at it. Come, let us go."
Mr. Cornwall Brand they found in a fever of impatience. He had the
trip scheduled to a time table, and he hated to be forced to change
his plans. His impatience showed itself in snappy commands and
inquiries to his Indian guides, who, however, merely grunted replies.
They knew their job and did it without command or advice, and with
complete indifference to anything the white man might have to say. To
Paula the only change in his manner was an excess of politeness.
Her father, however, met her with remonstrances.
"Why, Paula, my dear, you have kept us waiting."
"What's the rush, pater?" she enquired, coolly.
"Why, my dear, we are already behind our schedule, and you know
Cornwall hates that," he said in a low voice.
"Cornwall!" said Paula, in a loud voice of unmistakable ill temper.
"Does Cornwall run this outfit?"
"My dear Paula!" again remonstrated her father.
She turned to him impatiently, with an angry word at her lips,
caught upon Barry's face a look of surprise, paused midway in her
passion, then moved slowly toward him.
"Well," she asked, in an even, cold voice, "what do you think about
it? And anyway," she dropped her voice so that none heard but
himself, "why should you halt me? Who are you, to give me pause this
way?"
"Only a missionary," he answered, in an equally low tone, but with
a smile gentle, almost wistful on his face.
As with a flash the wrathful cloud vanished.
"A missionary," she replied softly. "God knows I need one."
"You do," he said emphatically, and still he smiled.
"Come, Paula," called Cornwall Brand. "We are all waiting."
Her face hardened at his words.
"Good-bye," she said to Barry. "I am coming back again to--to your
wonderful Canada."
"Of course you are," said Barry, heartily. "They all do."
He went with her to the canoe, steadied her as she took her place,
and stood watching till the bend in the river shut them from view.
"Nice people," said his father. "Very fine, jolly girl."
"Yes, isn't she?" replied his son.
"Handsome, too," said his father, glancing keenly at him.
"Is she? Yes, I think so. Yes, indeed, very," he added, as if
pondering the matter. "When do we move, dad?"
A look of relief crossed the father's face.
"This afternoon, I think. We have only a few days now. We shall
run up Buffalo Creek into the Foothills for some trout. It will be a
little stiff, but you are fit enough now, aren't you, Barry?" His
voice was tinged with anxiety.
"Fit for anything, dad, thanks to you."
"Not to me, Barry. To yourself largely."
"No," said the boy, throwing his arm round his father's shoulder,
"thanks to you, dear old dad,--and to God."
On the Red Pine trail two men were driving in a buckboard drawn by
a pair of half-broken pinto bronchos. The outfit was a rather
ramshackle affair, and the driver was like his outfit. Stewart Duff
was a rancher, once a "remittance man," but since his marriage three
years ago he had learned self-reliance and was disciplining himself in
self-restraint. A big, lean man he was, his thick shoulders and
large, hairy muscular hands suggesting great physical strength, his
swarthy face, heavy features, coarse black hair, keen dark eyes,
deepset under shaggy brows, suggesting force of character with a
possibility of brutality in passion. Yet when he smiled his heavy
face was not unkindly, indeed the smile gave it a kind of rugged
attractiveness. He was past his first youth, and on his face were the
marks of the stormy way by which he had come.
He drove his jibing bronchos with steady hands. No light touch was
his upon the reins, and the bronchos' wild plunging met with a check
from those muscular hands of such iron rigidity as to fling them back
helpless and amazed upon their hocks.
His companion was his opposite in physical appearance, and in those
features and lines that so unmistakably reveal the nature and
character within. Short and stout, inclined indeed to fat, to his
great distress, his thick-set figure indicated strength without
agility, solidity without resilience. He had a pleasant, open face,
with a kindly, twinkling blue eye that goes with a merry heart, with a
genial, sunny soul. But there was in the blue eye and in the open
face, for all the twinkles and the smiles, a certain alert shrewdness
that proclaimed the keen man of business, and in the clean cut lips
lay the suggestion of resolute strength. A likable man he was, with an
infinite capacity for humour, but with a bedrock of unyielding
determination in him that always surprised those who judged him
lightly.
The men were friends, and had been comrades more or less during
those pioneer days that followed their arrival in the country from
Scotland some dozen years ago. Often they had fallen out with each
other, for Duff was stormy of temper and had a habit of letting
himself swing out upon its gusts of passion, reckless of
consequences; but he was ever the one to offer amends and to seek
renewal of good relations. He had few friends, and so he clung the
more closely to those he had. At such times the other would wait in
cool, good-tempered but determined aloofness for his friend's return.
"You can chew your cud till you're cool again," he would say when
the outbreak would arise. But invariably their differences were
composed and their friendship remained unbroken.
The men sat in the buckboard, leaning forward with hunched
shoulders, swaying easily to the pitching of the vehicle as it
rattled along the trail which, especially where it passed over the
round topped ridges, was thickly strewn with stones. Before them,
now on the trail and now ranging wide over the prairie, ran a
beautiful black and white English setter.
"Great dog that, Sandy," said Duff. "I could have had a dozen
birds this afternoon. A wonderful nose, and steady as a rock."
"A good dog, Stewart," assented Sandy, but with slight interest.
"There ain't another like him in this western country," said the
owner of the dog with emphasis.
"Oh, I don't know about that. There are some very good dogs around
here, Stewart," replied Sandy lightly.
"But I know. And that's why I'm saying there ain't his like in
this western country, and that's as true as your name is Sandy
Bayne."
"Well, my name is Sandy Bayne, all right, but how did he come out
at the Calgary trials?"
"Aw, those damned gawks! They don't know a good dog from a he-
goat! They don't know what a dog is for, or how to use him."
"Oh, now, Stewart," said Sandy, "I guess Willocks knows a dog when
he sees one."
"Willocks!" said his friend with scorn. "There's where you're
wrong. Do you know why he cut Slipper out of the Blue Ribbon?
Because he wouldn't range a mile away. Darned old fool! What's the
good of a point a mile away! Keeps you running over the whole
creation, makes you lose time, tires yourself and tires your dog; and
more than that, in nine cases out of ten you lose your bird. Give me a
close ranger. He cleans up as he goes, keeps your game right at your
hand, and gets you all the sport there is."
"Who beat you, Stewart, in the trials?"
"That bitch of Snider's."
"Man! Stewart, that's a beautiful bitch! I know her well. She's a
beautiful bitch!" Sandy began to show enthusiasm.
"Oh, there you go! That's just what those fool judges said.
'Beautiful dog! Beautiful dog!' Suppose she is! Looks ain't
everything. They're something, but the question is, does she get the
birds? Now, Slipper there got three birds to her one. Got 'em within
range, too."
"Ah, but Stewart, yon's a good bitch," said Sandy.
"Look here!" cried his friend, "I have bred more dogs in the old
country than those men ever saw in their lives."
"That may be, Stewart, but yon's a good bitch," persisted Sandy.
For a mile more they discussed the merits of Slipper and of his
rivals, Sandy with his semi-humorous chaff extracting quiet amusement
from his friend's wrath, and the latter, though suspecting that he was
being drawn, unable to restrain his passionate championship of his
dog.
At length Sandy, wearying of the discussion, caught sight of a
figure far before them on the trail.
"Who is that walking along there?" he enquired.
Together they ran over the names of all who in this horse country
were unfortunate enough to be doomed to a pedestrian form of
locomotion.
"Guess it's the preacher," said Duff finally, whose eyes were like
a hawk's.
"He's been out at my place Sunday afternoon," said Sandy, "but I
haven't met him myself. What sort is he?"
"Don't ask me. I sometimes go with the madame to church, but
generally I fall asleep. He's no alarm clock."
"Then you can't tell what sort of a preacher he is," said Sandy
with a twinkle in his eye. "You can't hear much when you are
asleep."
"I hear enough to know that he's no good as a preacher. I hear
they're going to fire him."
"I tell you what it is, Stewart," said Sandy, "I don't believe you
would know a good sermon if you heard one."
"What's that you say? I've heard the best preachers in the country
that breeds preachers, in the country where preachers grow like the
berries on the bramble bushes. I know preaching, and I like good
preaching, too."
"Oh, come off, Stewart! You may be a good judge of dogs, but I'm
blowed if I am going to take you as a judge of preachers."
"The same qualities in all of them, dogs, horses, preachers,"
insisted Duff.
"How do you make that out?"
"Well, take a horse. He must be a good-looker. This preacher is a
good-looker, all right, but looks ain't everything. Must be quick at
the start, must have good action, good style, staying power, and good
at the finish. Most preachers never know when to finish, and that's
the way with this man."
"Are you going to take him up?" inquired Sandy, for they were now
close upon the man walking before them.
"Oh, I guess not," replied Duff. "I haven't much use for him."
"Say, what's the matter with him? He looks rather puffed out,"
said Sandy. "Better take him up."
"All right," replied Duff, pulling up his bronchos. "Good day.
Will you have a ride? Mr. Barry Dunbar, my friend Mr. Bayne."
"Glad to meet you, Mr. Bayne," said Barry, who was pale and panting
hard. "Thanks for the lift. The truth--is--I'm rather--done up. A
touch of asthma--the first--in five years. An old trouble of mine."
"Get up here," said Sandy. "There's room for three in the seat."
"No--thank you,--I should--crowd you,--all right behind here.
Beastly business--this asthma. Worse when--the pollen--from the
plants--is floating--about--so they say. I don't know--nobody
does--I fancy." They drove on, bumping over the stones, Barry
gradually getting back his wind. The talk of the men in the front
seat had fallen again on dogs, Stewart maintaining with ever
increasing vehemence his expert knowledge of dogs, of hunting dogs,
and very especially of setter hunting dogs; his friend, while
granting his knowledge of dogs in general, questioning the
unprejudiced nature of his judgment as far as Slipper was concerned.
As Duff's declarations grew in violence they became more and more
elaborately decorated with profanity. In the full tide of their
conversation a quiet voice broke in:
"Too many 'damns.'"
"What!" exclaimed Duff.
"I beg your pardon!" said Sandy.
"Too many 'damns,'" said Barry, looking quietly at Duff.
"Dams? Where?" said Duff, looking about.
"Beaver dams, do you mean?" enquired Sandy. "I don't see any."
"Too many 'damns,'" reiterated Barry. "You don't need them. You
really don't need them, you know, and besides, they are not right.
Profanity is quite useless, and it's wicked."
"Well, I'll be damned!" said Stewart in a low voice to his friend.
"He means us."
"And quite right, too," said Sandy solemnly. "You know your
English is rotten bad. Yes, sir," he continued, turning round to
Barry, "I quite agree with you. My friend is quite unnecessarily
free in his speech."
"Yes, but you are just the same, you know," said Barry. "Not quite
so many, but then you are not quite so excited."
"Got you there, old sport," grunted Duff, highly amused at Sandy's
discomfiture. But to Barry he said, "I guess it's our own business
how we express ourselves."
"Yes, it is, but, pardon me, not entirely so. There are others in
the world, you know, and you must consider others. The habit is a
bad habit, a rotten habit, and quite useless--silly, indeed."
Duff turned his back upon him. Sandy, giving his friend a nudge,
burst into a loud laugh.
"You are right, sir," he said, turning to Barry. "You are quite
right."
At this point Slipper created a diversion.
"Hello!" said Duff. "Say! Look at him!" He pointed to the dog.
"Ain't he a picture!"
A hundred yards away stood Slipper, rigid, every muscle, every hair
taut, one foot arrested in air.
"I'll just get those," said Duff, slipping out of the buckboard and
drawing the gun from beneath the seat. "Steady, old boy, steady!
Hold the lines, Sandy."
He moved quickly toward the dog who, quivering with that mysterious
instinct found in the hunting dog, still held the point with taut
muscles, nose and tail in line.
"Hello!" Barry called out. "It isn't the season yet for chicken.
I say, Mr. Duff," he shouted, "it isn't the chicken season, you
know."
"Better leave him alone," said Sandy.
"But it isn't the season yet! It is against the law!" protested
Barry indignantly.
Meantime Stewart Duff was closing up cautiously behind Slipper.
"Forward, old boy! Ste-e-e-ady! Forward!" The dog refused to
move. "Forward, Slipper!"
Still the dog remained rigid, as if nailed to the ground.
"On, Slipper!"
Slowly the dog turned his head with infinite caution half round
toward his master, as if in protest.
"Hello, there!" shouted Barry, "you know--"
Just as he called there was on all sides a great whirring of wings.
A dozen chicken flew up from under Duff's feet. Bang! Bang! went his
gun.
"Missed, as I'm a sinner!" exclaimed Sandy. "I thought he was a
better shot than that."
Back came Duff striding wide toward the buckboard. Fifty yards
away he shouted:
"Say! what the devil do you mean calling like that at a man when
he's on the point of shooting!" His face was black with anger. He
looked ready to strike. Barry looked at him steadily.
"But, I was just reminding you that it was not the season for
chicken yet," he said in the tone of a man prepared to reason the
matter.
"What's that got to do with it! And anyway, whose business is it
what I do but my own?"
"But it's against the law!"
"Oh, blank the law! Besides--"
"Besides it isn't--well, you know, it isn't quite sporting to shoot
out of season." Barry's manner was as if dealing with a fractious
child.
Duff, speechless with his passion, looked at him as if not quite
sure what form his vengeance should take.
"He's quite right, Stewart," said his friend Sandy, who was hugely
enjoying himself. "You know well enough you are down on the farmer
chaps who go pot hunting before season. It's rotten sport, you
know."
"Oh, hell! Will you shut up! Can't I shoot over my dog when he
points? I'm not out shooting. If I want to give my dog a little
experience an odd bird or two don't matter. Besides, what the--"
"Oh, come on, Stewart! Get in, and get a move on! You know you
are in the wrong. But I thought you were a better shot than that,"
added Sandy.
His remark diverted Duff's rage.
"Better shot!" he stormed. "Who could shoot with a--a--a--" he was
feeling round helplessly for a properly effective word,--"with a
fellow yelling at you?" he concluded lamely. "I'd have had a brace
of them if it hadn't been for him."
"In that case," said Barry coolly, "I saved you from the law."
"Saved me from the law! What the devil do you mean, anyway?" said
Stewart. "If I want to pick up a bird who's to hinder me? And
what's the law got to do with it?"
"Well, you know, I'm not sure but it might have been my duty to
report you. I feel that all who break the game laws should be
reported. It is the only way to stop the lawless destruction of the
game."
Barry spoke in a voice of quiet deliberation, as if pondering the
proper action in the premises.
"Quite right, too," said Sandy gravely, but with a twinkle in his
blue eye. "They ought to be reported. I have no use for those
poachers."
Duff made no reply. His rage and disgust, mingled with the sense
of his being in the wrong, held him silent. No man in the whole
country was harder upon the game poachers than he, but to be held up
in his action and to be threatened with the law by this young
preacher, whom he rather despised anyway, seemed to paralyse his
mental activities. It did not help his self-control that he was
aware that his friend was having his fun of him.
At this moment, fortunately for the harmony of the party, their
attention was arrested by the appearance of a motor car driven at a
furious rate along the trail, and which almost before they were aware
came honking upon them. With a wild lurch the bronchos hurled
themselves from the trail, upsetting the buckboard and spilling its
load.
Duff, cumbered with his gun, which he had reloaded, allowed one of
the reins to drop from his hands and the team went plunging about in
a circle, but Barry, the first to get to his feet, rushed to the
rescue, snatched the reins and held on till he had dragged the
plunging bronchos to a halt.
The rage which had been boiling in Duff, and which with difficulty
had been held within bounds, suddenly burst all bonds of control.
With a fierce oath he picked up the gun which he had thrown aside in
his struggle with the horses, and levelled it at the speeding motor
car.
Barry was nearer and quicker. The shot went off, but his hand had
knocked up the gun.
"My God, Stewart! Are you clean crazy!" said Bayne, gripping him
by the arm. "Do you know what you are doing? You are not fit to
carry a gun!"
"I'd have bust his blanked tires for him, anyway!" blustered Duff,
though his face and voice showed that he had received a shock.
"Yes, and you might have been a murderer by this time, and heading
for the pen, but for Dunbar here. You owe him more than you can ever
pay, you blanked fool!"
Duff made no reply, but busied himself with his horses. Nor did he
speak again till everything was in readiness for the road.
"Get in," he then said gruffly, and that was his last word until
they drove into the village.
At the store he drew up.
"Thank you for the lift," said Barry. "I should have had a tough
job to get back in time."
Duff grunted at him, and passed on into the store.
"I am very glad to have met you," said Bayne, shaking hands warmly
with him. "You have done us both a great service. He is my friend,
you know."
"I am afraid I have offended him, all the same. But you see I
couldn't help it, could I?"
Bayne looked at his young, earnest face for a moment or two as if
studying him, then said with a curious smile, "No, I don't believe
you could have helped it." And with that he passed into the store.
"What sort of a chap is that preacher of yours?" he asked of the
storekeeper.
"I don't know; he ain't my church. Ask Innes there. He's a
pillar."
Bayne turned to a long, lean, hard-faced man leaning against the
counter.
"My name is Bayne, from Red Pine, Mr. Innes. I am interested in
knowing what sort of a chap your preacher is. He comes out to our
section, but I never met him till to-day."
"Oh, he's no that bad," said Innes cautiously.
"Not worth a cent," said a little, red headed man standing near.
"He can't preach for sour apples."
"I wadna just say that, Mr. Hayes," said Innes.
"How do you know, Innes?" retorted Hayes. "You know you fall
asleep before he gets rightly started."
"I aye listen better with ma eyes shut."
"Yes, and snore better, too, Mac," said Hayes. "But I don't blame
you. Most of them go to sleep anyway. That's the kind of preacher
he is."
"What sort of a chap is he? I mean what sort of man?"
"Well, for one thing, he's always buttin' in," volunteered a
square-built military looking man standing near. "If he'd stick to
his gospel it wouldn't be so bad, but he's always pokin' his nose
into everything."
"But he's no that bad," said Innes again, "and as for buttin' in,
McFettridge, and preachin' the gospel, I doubt the country is a good
deal the better for the buttin' in that him and his likes have done
this past year. And besides, the bairns all like him."
"Well, that's not a bad sign, Mr. Innes," said Sandy Bayne, "and
I'm not sure that I don't like him myself. But I guess he butts in,
all right."
"Oh, ay! he butts in," agreed Innes, "but I'm no so sure that
that's no a part of his job, too."
The Dunbars lived in a cottage on a back street, which had the
distinction of being the only home on the street which possessed the
adornment of a garden. A unique garden it was, too. Indeed, with the
single exception of Judge Hepburn's garden, which was quite an
elaborate affair, and which was said to have cost the Judge a "pile of
money," there was none to compare with it in the village of Wapiti.
Any garden on that bare, wind-swept prairie meant toil and infinite
pains, but a garden like that of the Dunbars represented in addition
something of genius. In conception, in design, and in execution the
Dunbars' garden was something apart. Visitors were taken 'round to
the back street to get a glimpse of the Dunbars' cottage and garden.
The garden was in two sections. That at the back of the cottage,
sheltered by a high, close board fence covered with Virginia creeper,
was given over to vegetables, and it was quite marvellous how, under
Richard Dunbar's care, a quarter of an acre of ground could grow such
enormous quantities of vegetables of all kinds. Next to the vegetable
garden came the plot for small fruits-- strawberries, raspberries,
currants, of rare varieties.
The front garden was devoted to flowers. Here were to be found the
old fashioned flowers dear to our grandmothers, and more particularly
the old fashioned flowers native to English and Scottish soil.
Between the two gardens a thick row of tall, splendid sunflowers made
a stately hedge. Then came larkspur, peonies, stocks, and
sweet-williams, verbenas and mignonette, with borders of lobelia and
heliotrope. Along the fence were sweet peas, for which Alberta is
famous.
But it was the part of the garden close about the front porch and
verandah where the particular genius of Richard Dunbar showed itself.
Here the flowers native to the prairie, the coulee, the canyon, were
gathered; the early wind flower, the crowfoot and the buffalo bean,
wild snowdrops and violets. Over trellises ran the tiny
morning-glory, with vetch and trailing arbutus. A bed of wild roses
grew to wonderful perfection. Later in the year would be seen the
yellow and crimson lilies, daisies white and golden, and when other
flowers had faded, golden rod and asters in gorgeous contrast. The
approach to the door of the house was by a gravel walk bordered by
these prairie flowers.
The house inside fulfilled the promise of the garden. The living
room, simple in its plan, plain in its furnishing, revealed
everywhere that touch in decorative adornment that spoke of the
cultivated mind and refined taste. A group of rare etchings had
their place over the mantel above a large, open fireplace. On the
walls were to be seen really fine copies of the world's most famous
pictures, and on the panels which ran 'round the walls were bits of
pottery and china, relics of other days and of other homes.
But what was most likely to strike the eye of a stranger on
entering the living room was the array of different kinds of musical
instruments. At one end of the room stood a small upright piano, a
'cello held one corner, a guitar another; upon a table a cornet was
deposited, and on the piano a violin case could be seen, while a banjo
hung from a nail on the wall.
Near the fireplace a curiously carved pipe-rack hung, with some
half dozen pipes of weird design, evidently the collection of years,
while just under it a small table held the utensils sacred to the
smoker.
When Barry entered he found the table set and everything in
readiness for tea.
"Awfully sorry I'm too late to help you with tea, dad. I have had
a long walk, and quite a deuce of a time getting home."
"All right, boy. Glad you are here. The toast is ready, tea
waiting to be infused. But what happened? No, don't begin telling
me till you get yourself ready. But hurry, your meeting hour will be
on in no time."
"Right-o, dad! Shame to make a slavey of you in this way. I'll be
out in a jiffy."
He threw off his coat and vest, shirt and collar, took a pail of
water to a big block in the little shed at the back, soused his head
and shoulders in it with loud snorting and puffing, and emerged in a
few minutes looking refreshed, clean and wholesome, his handsome face
shining with vigorous health.
Together they stood at the table while the son said a few words of
reverent grace.
"I'm ravenous, dad. What! Fried potatoes! Oh, you are a brick."
"Tired, boy?"
"No. That reminds me of my thrilling tale, which I shall begin
after my third slice of toast, and not before. You can occupy the
precious minutes, dad, in telling me of your excitements in the
office this afternoon."
"Don't sniff at me. I had a few, though apparently you think it
impossible in my humdrum grey life."
"Good!" said Barry, his mouth full of toast. "Go on."
"Young Neil Fraser is buying, or has just bought, the S.Q.R.
ranch. Filed the transfer to-day."
"Neil Fraser? He's in my tale, too. Bought the S.Q.R.? Where did
he get the stuff?"
"Stuff?"
"Dough, the dirt, the wherewithal, in short the currency, dad."
"Barry, you are ruining your English," said his father.
"Yum-yum. Bully! Did you notice that, dad? I'm coming on, eh?
One thing I almost pray about, that I might become expert in slinging
the modern jaw hash. I'm appallingly correct in my forms of speech.
But go on, dad. I'm throwing too much vocalisation myself. You were
telling me about Neil Fraser. Give us the chorus now."
"I don't like it, boy," said his father, shaking his head, "and
especially in a clergyman."
"But that's where you are off, dad. The trouble is, when I come
within range of any of my flock all my flip vocabulary absolutely
vanishes, and I find myself talking like a professor of English or a
maiden lady school ma'am of very certain age."
"I don't like it, boy. Correct English is the only English for a
gentleman."
"I wonder," said the lad. "But I don't want to worry you, dad."
"Oh, as for me, that matters nothing at all, but I am thinking of
you and of your profession, your standing."
"I know that, dad. I sometimes wish you would think a little more
about yourself. But what of Neil Fraser?"
"He has come into some money. He has bought the ranch."
Barry's tone expressed doubtful approval. "Neil is a good sort,
dad, awfully reckless, but I like him," said Barry. "He is up and up
with it all."
"Now, what about your afternoon?" said his father.
"Well, to begin with, I had a dose of my old friend, the enemy."
"Barry, you don't tell me! Your asthma!" His father sat back from
the table gazing at him in dismay. "And I thought that was all done
with."
"So did I, dad. But it really didn't amount to much. Probably
some stomach derangement, more likely some of that pollen which is
floating around now. I passed through a beaver meadow where they
were cutting hay, and away I went in a gale of sneezing, forty miles
an hour. But I'm all right now, dad. I'm telling you the truth. You
know I do."
"Yes, yes, I know," said his father, concern and relief mingling in
his voice, "but you don't know how to take care of yourself, Barry.
But go on with your tale."
"Well, as I was panting along like a 'heavey horse,' as Harry Hobbs
would say,--not really too bad, dad,--along comes that big rancher,
Stewart Duff, driving his team of pinto bronchos, and with him a chap
named Bayne, from Red Pine Creek. He turned out to be an awfully
decent sort. And Duff's dog, Slipper, ranging on ahead, a beautiful
setter."
"Yes, I have seen him."
They discussed for a few moments the beauties and points of Duff's
Slipper, for both were keen sportsmen, and both were devoted to dogs.
Then Barry went back to his tale and gave an account of what had
happened during the ride home.
"You see Slipper ranging about got 'on point' and beautiful work it
was, too. Out jumped Duff with his gun, ready to shoot, though, of
course, he knew it was out of season and that he was breaking the
law. Well, just as Slipper flushed the birds, I shouted to Duff that
he was shooting out of season. He missed."
"Oh, he was properly wrathful at my spoiling his shot," cried the
young man.
"I don't know that I blame him, Barry," said his father
thoughtfully. "It is an annoying thing to be shouted at with your gun
on a bird, you know, extremely annoying."
"But he was breaking the law, dad!" cried Barry indignantly.
"I know, I know. But after all--"
"But, dad, you can't sit there and tell me that you don't condemn
him for shooting out of season. You know nothing makes you more
furious than hearing about chaps who pot chicken out of season."
"I know, I know, my boy." The father was apparently quite
distressed. "You are quite right, but--"
"Now, dad, I won't have it! You are not to tell me that I had no
business to stop him if I could. Besides, the law is the law, and
sport is sport."
"I quite agree, Barry. Believe me, I quite agree. Yet all the
same, a chap does hate to have his shot spoiled, and to shout at a
fellow with his gun on a bird,--well, you'll excuse me, Barry, but it
is hardly the sporting thing."
"Sporting! Sporting!" said Barry. "I know that I hated to do it,
but it was right. Besides talk about 'sporting'--what about shooting
out of season?"
"Yes, yes. Well, we won't discuss it. Go on, Barry."
"But I don't like it, dad. I don't like to think that you don't
approve of what I do. It was a beastly hard thing to do, anyway. I
had to make myself do it. It was my duty." The young man sat looking
anxiously at his father.
"Well, my boy," said his father, "I may be wrong, but do you think
you are always called upon to remonstrate with every law breaker? No,
listen to me," he continued hurriedly. "What I mean is, must you or
any of us assume responsibility for every criminal in the land?"
Barry sat silent a moment, considering this proposition.
"I wish I knew, dad. You know, I have often said that to excuse
myself after I have funked a thing, and let something go by without
speaking up against it."
"Funked it!"
"Yes. Funked standing up for the right thing, you know."
"Funked it!" said his father again. "You wouldn't do that, Barry?"
"Oh, wouldn't I, though? I am afraid you don't know me very well,
dad. However, I rather think I had started him up before that, you
know. You won't like this either. But I may as well go through with
it. You know, he was swearing and cursing most awfully, just in his
ordinary talk you know, and that is a thing I can't stand, so I up and
told him he was using too many 'damns.'"
"You did, eh?" In spite of himself the father could not keep the
surprise out of his voice. "Well, that took some nerve, at any
rate."
"There you are again, dad! You think I had no right to speak. But
somehow I can't help feeling I was right. For don't you see, it
would have seemed a bit like lowering the flag to have kept silent."
"Then for God's sake speak out, lad! I do not feel quite the same
way as you, but it is what you think yourself that must guide you.
But go on, go on."
"Well, I assure you he was in a proper rage, and if it hadn't been
for Bayne I believe he would have trimmed me to a peak, administered
a fitting castigation, I mean."
"He would, eh?" said the father with a grim smile. "I should like
to see him try."
"So should I, dad, if you were around. I think I see you--feint
with the right, then left, right, left! bing! bang! bung! All over
but the shiver, eh, dad? It would be sweet! But," he added
regretfully, "that's the very thing a fellow cannot do."
"Cannot do? And why not, pray? It is what every fellow is in duty
bound to do to a bully of that sort."
"Yes, but to be quite fair, dad, you could hardly call Duff a
bully. At least, he wasn't bullying me. As a matter of fact, I was
bullying him. Oh, I think he had reason to be angry. When a chap
undertakes to pull another chap up for law breaking, perhaps he should
be prepared to take the consequences. But to go on. Bayne stepped
in--awfully decent of him, too,--when just at that moment, as
novelists say, with startling suddenness occurred an event that
averted the impending calamity. Along came Neil Fraser, no less, in
that new car of his, in a whirlwind of noise and dust, honking like a
flock of wild geese. Well, you should have seen those bronchos. One
lurch, and we were on the ground, a beautiful upset, and the bronchos
in an incipient runaway, fortunately checked by your humble servant.
Duff, in a new and real rage this time, up with his gun and banged
off both barrels after the motor car, by this time honking down the
trail."
"By Jove! he deserved it," said the father. "Those motor fellows
make me long to do murder at times."
"That's because you have no car, Dad, of course."
"Did he hit him, do you think?"
"No. My arm happened to fly up, the gun banged toward the zenith.
Nothing doing!"
"Well, Barry, you do seem to have run foul of Mr. Duff."
"Three times, dad. But each time prevented him from breaking the
law and doing himself and others injury. Would you have let him off
this last time, dad?"
"No, no, boy. Human life has the first claim upon our care. You
did quite right, quite right. Ungovernable fool he must be!
Shouldn't be allowed to carry a gun."
"So Bayne declared," said Barry.
"Well, you have had quite an exciting afternoon. But finish your
tea and get ready for the meeting. I will wash up."
"Not if I know it, dad. You take your saw-horse and do me a little
Handel or Schubert. Do, please," entreated his son. "I want that
before meeting more than anything else. I want a change of mood. I
confess I am slightly rattled. My address is all prepared, but I must
have atmosphere before I go into the meeting."
His father took the 'cello, and after a few moments spent in
carefully tuning up, began with Handel's immortal Largo, then he
wandered into the Adagio Movement in Haydn's third Sonata, from
thence to Schubert's Impromptu in C Minor, after which he began the
Serenade, when he was checked by his son.
"No, not that, dad, that's sickening. I consider that the most
morally relaxing bit of music that I know. It frays the whole moral
fibre. Give us one of Chopin's Ballades, or better still a bit of
that posthumous Fantasie Impromptu, the largo movement. Ah! fine!
fine!"
He flung his dish-cloth aside, ran to the piano and began an
accompaniment to his father's playing.
"Now, dad, the Largo once more before we close." They did the
Largo once and again, then springing from the piano Barry cried:
"That Largo is a means of grace to me. There could be no better
preparation for a religious meeting than that. If you would only
come in and play for them, it would do them much more good than all
my preaching."
"If you would only take your music seriously, Barry," replied his
father, somewhat sadly, "you would become a good player, perhaps even
a great player."
"And then what, dad?"
His father waved him aside, putting up his 'cello.
"No use going into that again, boy."
"Well, I couldn't have been a great player, at any rate, dad."
"Perhaps not, boy, perhaps not," said his father. "Great players
are very rare. But it is time for your meeting."
"So it is, dad. Awfully sorry I didn't finish up those dishes.
Let them go till I return. I wish you would, dad, and come along
with me." His voice had a wistful note in it.
"Not to-night, boy, I think. We will have some talk after. You
will only be an hour, you know."
"All right, dad," said Barry. "Some time you may come." He could
not hide the wistful regret of his tone.
"Perhaps I shall, boy," replied his father.
It was the one point upon which there was a lack of perfect harmony
between father and son. When the boy went to college it was with the
intention of entering the profession of law, for which his father had
been reading in his young manhood when the lure of Canada and her
broad, free acres caught him, and he had abandoned the law and with
his wife and baby boy had emigrated to become a land owner in the
great Canadian west.
Alas! death, that rude spoiler of so many plans, broke in upon the
sanctity and perfect peace of that happy ranch home and ravished it
of its treasure, leaving a broken hearted man and a little boy,
orphaned and sickly, to be cared for. The ranch was sold, the
rancher moved to the city of Edmonton, thence in a few years to a
little village some twenty-five miles nearer to the Foothills, where
he became the Registrar and Homestead Inspector for the district.
Here he had lived ever since, training the torn tendrils of his
heart about the lad, till peace came back again, though never the
perfect joy of the earlier days. Every May Day the two were wont to
go upon an expedition many miles into the Foothills, to a little,
sunny spot, where a strong, palisaded enclosure held a little grave.
So little it looked, and so lonely amid the great hills. There, not
in an abandonment of grief, but in loving and grateful remembrance of
her whose dust the little grave now held, of what she had been to
them, and had done for them, they spent the day, returning to take up
again with hearts solemn, tender and chastened, the daily routine of
life.
That his son should grow to take up the profession of law had been
the father's dream, but during his university course the boy had come
under the compelling influence of a spiritual awakening that swept him
into a world filled with new impressions and other desires. Obeying
what he felt to be an imperative call, the boy chose the church as his
profession, and after completing his theological course in the city of
Winnipeg, and spending a year in study in Germany, while still a mere
youth he had been appointed as missionary to the district of which his
own village was the centre.
But though widely separate from each other in the matter of
religion, there were many points of contact between them. They were
both men of the great out-of-doors, and under his father's inspiration
and direction the boy had come to love athletic exercises of all
kinds. They were both music-mad, the father having had in early youth
a thorough musical education, the boy possessing musical talent of a
high order. Such training as was his he had received from his
father, but it was confined to one single instrument, the violin. To
this instrument, upon which his father had received the tuition of a
really excellent master, the son devoted long hours of study and
practice during his boyhood years, and his attainments were such as to
give promise of something more than an amateur's mastery of his
instrument. His college work, however, interfered with his music, and
to his father's great disappointment and regret he was forced to lay
aside his study of the violin. On the piano, however, the boy
developed an extraordinary power of improvisation and of sight
reading, and while his technique was faulty his insight, his power of
interpretation were far in excess of many artists who were his
superiors in musical knowledge and power of execution. Many were the
hours the father and son spent together through the long evenings of
the western winter, and among the many bonds that held them in close
comradeship, none was stronger than their common devotion to music.
Long after his son had departed to his meeting the father sat
dreaming over his 'cello, wandering among the familiar bits from the
old masters as fancy led him, nor was he aware of the lapse of time
till his son returned.
"Hello! Nine-thirty?" he exclaimed, looking at his watch. "You
have given them an extra dose to-night."
"Business meeting afterwards, which didn't come off after all,"
said his son. "Postponed till next Sunday." With this curt
announcement, and without further comment he sat down at his desk.
But after a few moments he rose quickly, saying, "Let us do some
real work, dad."
He took up his violin. His father, who was used to his moods,
without question or remark proceeded to tune up. An hour's hard
practice followed, without word from either except as regarded the
work in hand.
"I feel better now, dad," said the young man when they had
finished. "And now for a round with you."
"But what about your wind, boy? I don't like that asthma of yours
this afternoon."
"I am quite all right. It's quite gone. I feel sure it was the
pollen from the beaver meadow."
They cleared back the table and chairs from the centre of the room,
stripped to their shirts, put on the gloves and went at each other
with vim. Their style was similar, for the father had taught the son
all he knew, except that the father's was the fighting and the son's
the sparring style. To-night the roles appeared to be reversed, the
son pressing hard at the in-fighting, the father trusting to his foot
work and countering with the light touch of a man making points.
"You ARE boring in, aren't you?" said the father, stopping a fierce
rally.
"You are not playing up, dad," said his son. "I don't feel like
soft work to-night. Come to me!"
"As you say," replied the father, and for the next five minutes
Barry had no reason to complain of soft work, for his father went
after him with all the fight that was in him, so that in spite of a
vigorous defence the son was forced to take refuge in a runaway game.
"Now you're going!" shouted the son, making a fierce counter with
his right to a hard driven left, which he side-stepped. It was a
fatal exposure. Like the dart of a snake the right hand hook got him
below the jaw, and he was hurled breathless on the couch at the side
of the room.
"Got you now!" said his father.
"Not quite yet," cried Barry. Like a cat he was on his feet,
breathing deep breaths, dodging about, fighting for time.
"Enough!" cried his father, putting down his hands.
"Play up!" shouted Barry, who was rapidly recovering his wind. "No
soft work. Watch out!"
Again the father was on guard, while Barry, who seemed to have
drawn upon some secret source of strength, came at him with a
whirlwind attack, feinting, jabbing, swinging, hooking, till finally
he landed a short half arm on the jaw, which staggered his father
against the wall.
"Pax!" cried the young man. "I have all I want."
"Great!" said his father. "I believe you could fight, boy, if you
were forced to."
In the shed they sluiced each other with pails of water, had a rub
down and got into their dressing gowns.
"I feel fine, now, dad, and ready for anything," said Barry,
glowing with his exercise and his tub. "I was feeling like a
quitter. I guess that asthma got at my nerve. But I believe I will
see it through some way."
"Yes?" said his father, and waited.
"Yes. They were talking blue ruin in there to-night. Finances are
behind, congregation is running down, therefore the preacher is a
failure."
"Well, lad, remember this," said his father, "never let your liver
decide any course of action for you. Some good stiff work, a turn
with the gloves, for instance, is the best preparation I know for any
important decision. A man cannot decide wisely when he feels grubby.
Your asthma this afternoon is a symptom of liver."
"It is humiliating to a creature endowed with conscience and
intellect to discover how small a part these play at times in his
decisions. The ancients were not far wrong who made the liver the
seat of the emotions."
"Well," said his father, "it is a good thing to remember that most
of our bad hours come from our livers. So the preacher is a failure?
Who said so?"
"Oh, a number of them, principally Hayes."
"Thank God, and go to sleep," said his father. "If Hayes were
pleased with my preaching I should greatly suspect my call to the
ministry."
"But seriously, I am certainly not a great preacher, and perhaps
not a preacher at all. They say I have no 'pep,' which with some of
them appears to be the distinctive and altogether necessary
characteristic of a popular preacher."
"What said Innes?" enquired his father.
"Did you ever hear Innes say much? From his silence one would
judge that he must possess the accumulated wisdom of the ages."
"When he does talk, however, he generally says something. What was
his contribution?"
"'Ah, weel,' said the silent one, 'Ah doot he's no a Spurgeon, not
yet a Billy Sunday, but ye'll hardly be expectin' thae fowk at Wapiti
for nine hundred dollars a year.' Then, bless his old heart, he
added, 'But the bairns tak to him like ducks to water, so you'd better
bide a bit.' So they decided to 'bide a bit' till next Sunday. Dad,
at first I wanted to throw their job in their faces, only I always
know that it is the old Adam in me that feels like that, so I decided
to 'bide a bit' too."
"It is a poor job, after all, my boy," said his father. "It's no
gentleman's job the way it is carried on in this country. To think
of your being at the bidding of a creature like Hayes!"
He could have said no better word. The boy's face cleared like the
sudden shining of the sun after rain. He lifted his head and said,
"Thank God, not at his bidding, dad. 'One is your Master,'" he
quoted. "But after all, Hayes has something good in him. Do you
know, I rather like him. He's--"
"Oh, come now, we'll drop it right there," said his father, in a
disgusted tone. "When you come to finding something to like in that
rat, I surrender."
"Who knows?" said the boy, as if to himself. "Poor Hayes. He may
be quite a wonderful man, considering all things, his heredity and
his environment. What would I have been, dad, but for you?"
His father grunted, pulled hard at his pipe, coughed a bit, then
looked his son straight in the face, saying, "God knows what any of
us owe to our past." He fell into silence. His mind was far away,
following his heart to the palisaded plot of ground among the
Foothills and the little grave there in which he had covered from his
sight her that had been the inspiration to his best and finest things,
and his defence against the things low and base that had once hounded
his soul, howling hard upon his trail.
The son, knowing his mood, sat in silence with him, then rising
suddenly he sat himself on the arm of his father's chair, threw his
arm around his shoulder and said, "Dear old dad! Good old boy you
are, too. Good stuff! What would I have been but for you? A puny,
puling, wretched little crock, afraid of anything that could spit at
me. Do you remember the old gander? I was near my eternal damnation
that day."
"But you won out, my boy," said his father in a croaking voice,
putting his arm round his son.
"Yes, because you made me stick it, just as you have often made me
stick it since. May God forget me if I ever forget what you have
done for me. Shall we read now?"
He took the big Bible from its place upon the table, and turning
the leaves read aloud from the teachings of the world's greatest
Master. It was the parable of the talents.
"Rather hard on the failure," he said as he closed the book.
"No, not the failure," said his father, "the slacker, the quitter.
It is nature's law. There is no place in God's universe for a
quitter."
"You are right, dad," said Barry. "Good-night."
He kissed his father, as he had ever done since his earliest
infancy. Their prayers were said in private, the son, clergyman
though he was, could never bring himself to offer to lead the
devotions of him at whose knee he had kneeled every night of his
life, as a boy, for his evening prayer.
"Good-night, boy," said his father, holding him by the hand for a
moment or so. "We do not know what is before us, defeat, loss,
suffering. That part is not in our hands altogether, but the shame
of the quitter never need, and never shall be ours."
The little man stepped into his bedroom with his shoulders squared
and his head erect.
"By Jove! He's no quitter," said his son to himself, as his eyes
followed him. "When he quits he'll be dead. God keep me from
shaming him!"
The hour for the church service had not quite arrived, but already
a number of wagons, buckboards and buggies had driven up and
deposited their loads at the church door. The women had passed into
the church, where the Sunday School was already in session; the men
waited outside, driven by the heat of the July sun and the hotter July
wind into the shade of the church building.
Through the church windows came the droning of voices, with now and
then a staccato rapping out of commands heard above the droning.
"That's Hayes," said a sturdy young chap, brown as an Indian,
lolling upon the grass. "He likes to be bossing something."
"That's so, Ewen," replied a smaller man, with a fish-like face,
his mouth and nose running into a single feature.
"I guess he's doin' his best, Nathan Pilley," answered another man,
stout and stocky, with bushy side whiskers flanking around a rubicund
face, out of which stared two prominent blue eyes.
"Oh, I reckon he is, Mr. Boggs. I have no word agin Hayes,"
replied Nathan Pilley, a North Ontario man, who, abandoning a rocky
farm in Muskoka, had strayed to this far west country in search of
better fortune. "I have no word agin Mr. Hayes, Mr. Boggs," he
reiterated. "In fact, I think he ought to be highly commended for
his beneficent work."
"But he does like to hear himself giving out orders, all the same,"
persisted the young man addressed as Ewen.
"Yes, he seems to sorter enjoy that, too, Ewen," agreed Nathan, who
was never known to oppose any man's opinion.
"He's doin' his best," insisted Mr. Boggs, rather sullenly.
"Yes, he is that, Mr. Boggs, he is that," said Nathan.
"But he likes to be the big toad in the puddle," said Ewen.
"Well, he certainly seems to, he does indeed, Ewen."
Clear over the droning there arose at this point another sound, a
chorus of childish laughter.
"That's the preacher's class," said Boggs. "Quare sort o' Sunday
School where the kids carry on like that."
"Seems rather peculiar," agreed Nathan, "peculiar in Sunday School,
it does."
"What's the matter with young Pickles?" enquired Ewen.
The eyes of the company, following the pointing finger, fell upon
young Pickles standing at the window of the little vestry to the
church, and looking in. He was apparently convulsed with laughter,
with his hand hard upon his mouth and nose as a kind of silencer.
"Do you know what's the matter with him, Pat?" continued Ewen.
Pat McCann, the faithful friend and shadow of young Pickles, after
studying the attitude and motions of his friend, gave answer:
"It's the preacher, I guess. He's kiddin' the kids inside. He's
some kidder, too," he said, moving to take his place beside his
friend.
"What's he doing anyway?" said Ewen. "I'm going to see."
Gradually a little company gathered behind young Pickles and Pat
McCann. The window commanded a view of the room, yet in such a way
that the group were unobserved by the speaker.
"Say, you ought to seen him do the camel a minute ago," whispered
Pickles.
In the little vestry room were packed some twenty children of all
ages and sizes, with a number of grownups who had joined the class in
charge of some of its younger members. There was, for instance, Mrs.
Innes, with the two youngest of her numerous progeny pillowed against
her yielding and billowy person; and Mrs. Stewart Duff, an infant of
only a few weeks upon her knee accounting sufficiently for the
paleness of her sweet face, and two or three other women with their
small children filling the bench that ran along the wall.
"Say! look at Harry Hobbs," said Pat McCann to his friend.
Upon the stove, which in summer was relegated to the corner of the
room, sat Harry Hobbs, a man of any age from his appearance, thin and
wiry, with keen, darting eyes, which now, however, were fastened upon
the preacher. All other eyes were, too. Even the smallest of the
children seated on the front bench were gazing with mouths wide open,
as if fascinated, upon the preacher who, moving up and down with
quick, lithe steps, was telling them a story. A wonderful story, too,
it seemed, the wonder of it apparent in the riveted eyes and fixed
faces. It was the immortal story, matchless in the language, of
Joseph, the Hebrew shepherd boy, who, sold into slavery by his
brethren, became prime minister of the mighty empire of Egypt. The
voice tone of the minister, now clear and high, now low and soft,
vibrating like the deeper notes of the 'cello, was made for story
telling. Changing with every changing emotion, it formed an exquisite
medium to the hearts of the listeners for the exquisite music of the
tale.
The story was approaching its climactic denouement; the rapturous
moment of the younger brother's revealing was at hand; Judah, the
older brother, was now holding the centre of the stage and making
that thrilling appeal, than which nothing more moving is to be found
in our English speech. The preacher's voice was throbbing with all
the pathos of the tale. Motionless, the little group hung hard upon
the story-teller, when the door opened quickly, a red head appeared, a
rasping voice broke in:
"Your class report, Mr. Dunbar, please. We're waiting for it."
A sigh of disappointment and regret swept the room.
"Oh, darn the little woodpecker!" said Ewen from the outside, in a
disgusted tone. "That's the way with Hayes. He thinks he's the
whole works, and that he never can get in wrong."
The spell was broken, never to be renewed. The story hurried to
its close, but the great climax failed of its proper effect.
"He's a hummer, ain't he?" exclaimed young Pickles to his friend,
Pat McCann.
"Some hummer, and then some!" replied Pat.
"I'm goin' in," said Pickles.
"Aw, what for? He ain't no good preachin' to them folks. By gum!
I think he's scared of 'em."
But Pickles persisted, and followed with the men and boys who
lounged lazily into the church, from which the Sunday School had now
been dismissed.
It appeared that the judgment of Pat McCann upon the merits of the
preacher would be echoed by the majority of the congregation present.
While the service was conducted in proper form and in reverent
spirit, the sermon was marked by that most unpardonable sin of which
sermons can be guilty; it was dull. Solid enough in matter,
thoughtful beyond the average, it was delivered in a style appallingly
wooden, with an utter absence of that arresting, dramatic power that
the preacher had shown in his children's class.
The appearance of the congregation was, as ever, a reflection of
the sermon. The heat of the day, the reaction from the long week in
the open air, the quiet monotony of the well modulated voice rising
and falling in regular cadence in what is supposed by so many
preachers to be the tone suitable for any sacred office, produced an
overwhelmingly somnolent effect. Many of them slept, some frankly and
openly, others under cover of shading hands, bowed heads, or other
subterfuges. Others again spent the whole of the period of the
sermon, except for some delicious moments of surreptitious sleep, in a
painful but altogether commendable struggle against the insidious
influence of the god of slumber.
Among the latter was Mrs. Innes, whose loyalty to her minister,
which was as much a part of her as her breathing, contended in a
vigorous fight against her much too solid flesh. It was a certain
aid to wakefulness that her two children, deep in audible slumber,
kept her in a state of active concern lest their inert and rotund
little masses of slippery flesh should elude her grasp, and wreck the
proprieties of the hour by flopping on the floor. There was also a
further sleep deterrent in the fact that immediately before her sat
Mr. McFettridge, whose usually erect form, yielding to the soporific
influences of the environment, showed a tendency gradually to sag into
an attitude, relaxed and formless, which suggested sleep. This, to
the lady behind him, partook of the nature of an affront to her
minister. Consequently she considered it her duty to arouse the
snoozing McFettridge with a vigorous poke in the small of the back.
The effect was instantaneously apparent. As if her insistent
finger had touched a button and released an electric current, Mr.
McFettridge's sagging form shot convulsively into rigidity, and
impinging violently upon the peacefully slumbering Mr. Boggs on the
extreme end of the bench, toppled him over into the aisle.
The astonished Boggs, finding himself thus deposited upon the
floor, and beholding the irate face of Mr. McFettridge glooming down
upon him, and fancying him to be the cause of his present humiliating
position, sprang to his feet, swung a violent blow upon Mr.
Fettridge's ear, exclaiming sotto voce:
"Take that, will you! And mind your own business! You were
sleeping yourself, anyway!"
Before the astonished and enraged Mr. McFettridge could gather his
wits sufficiently for action, there rang over the astonished
congregation a peal of boyish laughter. It was from the minister. A
few irrepressible youngsters joined in the laugh; the rest of the
congregation, however, were held rigid in the grip of a shocked
amazement.
"Oh, I say! do forgive me, Mr. McFettridge!" cried the young man at
the desk. "It was quite involuntary, I assure you." Then, quickly
recovering himself, he added, "And now we shall conclude the service
by singing the seventy-ninth hymn."
Before the last verse was sung he reminded the audience of the
congregational meeting immediately following, and without further
comment the service was brought to a close.
A number of the congregation, among them Barry's father, departed.
"Sit down, Neil," said Mrs. Innes to Neil Fraser. "You'll be
wanted I doot." And Neil, protesting that he knew nothing about
church business, sat down.
At the back of the church were gathered Harry Hobbs, young Pickles,
and others of the less important attendants of the church, who had
been induced to remain by the rumour of a "scrap."
By a fatal mischance, the pliant Nathan Pilley was elected
chairman. This gentleman was obsessed by the notion that he
possessed in a high degree the two qualities which he considered
essential to the harmonious and expeditious conduct of a public
meeting, namely, an invincible determination to agree with every
speaker, and an equally invincible determination to get motions
passed.
In a rambling and aimless speech, Mr. Pilley set forth in a
somewhat general way the steps leading up to this meeting, and then
called upon Mr. Innes, the chairman of the Board of Management, to
state more specifically the object for which it was called.
Mr. Innes, who was incurably averse to voluble speech, whether
public or private, arose and said, in rolling Doric:
"Weel, Mr. Chair-r-man, there's no much to be done. We're behind a
few hundred dollars, but if some one will go about wi' a bit paper,
nae doot the ar-rear-rs wad soon be made up, and everything wad be
ar-richt."
"Exactly," said Mr. Pilley pleasantly. "Now will some one offer a
motion?"
Thereupon Mr. Hayes was instantly upon his feet, and in a voice
thin and rasping exclaimed:
"Mr. Chairman, there's business to be done, and we are here to do
it, and we're not going to be rushed through in this way."
"Exactly, Mr. Hayes, exactly," said Mr. Pilley. "We must give
these matters the fullest consideration."
Then followed a silence.
"Perhaps Mr. Hayes--" continued the chairman, looking appealingly
at that gentleman.
"Well, Mr. Chairman," said Mr. Hayes, with an appeased but slightly
injured air, "it is not my place to set forth the cause of this
meeting being called. If the chairman of the board would do his
duty"--here he glared at the unconscious Mr. Innes--"he would set
before it the things that have made this meeting necessary, and that
call for drastic action."
"Hear! Hear!" cried Mr. Boggs.
"Exactly so," acquiesced the chairman. "Please continue, Mr.
Hayes."
Mr. Hayes continued: "The situation briefly is this: We are
almost hopelessly in debt, and--"
"How much?" enquired Neil Fraser, briskly interrupting.
"Seven hundred dollars," replied Mr. Hayes, "and further--"
"Five hundred dollars," said Mr. Innes.
"I have examined the treasurer's books," said Mr. Hayes in the
calmly triumphant tone of one sure of his position, "and I find the
amount to be seven hundred dollars, and therefore--"
"Five hundred dollars," repeated Mr. Innes, gazing into space.
"Seven hundred dollars, I say," snapped Mr. Hayes.
"Five hundred dollars," reiterated Mr. Innes, without further
comment.
"I say I have examined the books. The arrears are seven hundred
dollars."
"Five hundred dollars," said Mr. Innes calmly.
The youngsters at the back snickered.
"Go to it!" said Harry Hobbs, under his breath.
Even the minister, who was sitting immediately behind Harry, could
not restrain a smile.
"Mr. Chairman," cried Mr. Hayes, indignantly, "I appeal against
this interruption. I assert--"
"Where's the treasurer?" said Neil Fraser. "What's the use of this
chewin' the rag?"
"Ah! Exactly so," said the chairman, greatly relieved. "Mr.
Boggs-- Perhaps Mr. Boggs will enlighten us."
Mr. Boggs arose with ponderous deliberation.
"Mr. Chairman," he said, "in one sense Mr. Hayes is right when he
states the arrears to be seven hundred dollars--"
"Five hundred dollars A'm tellin' ye," said Mr. Innes with the
first sign of feeling he had shown.
"And Mr. Innes is also right," continued Mr. Boggs, ignoring the
interruption, "when he makes the arrears five hundred dollars, the
two hundred dollars difference being the quarterly revenue now due."
"Next week," said Mr. Innes, reverting to his wonted calm.
"Exactly so," said the chairman, rubbing his hands amiably; "so
that the seven hundred dollars we now owe--"
This was too much even for the imperturbable Mr. Innes.
He arose in his place, moved out into the aisle, advanced toward
the platform, and with arm outstretched, exclaimed in wrathful tones:
"Mon, did ye no hear me tellin' ye? I want nae mon to mak' me a
le-ear."
At this point Mr. Stewart Duff, who had come to convey his wife
home, and had got tired waiting for her outside, entered the church.
"Oh, get on with the business," said Neil Fraser, who, although
enjoying the scene, was becoming anxious for his dinner. "The
question what's to be done with the five hundred dollars' arrears. I
say, let's make it up right here. I am willing to give--"
"No, Mr. Chairman," shouted Mr. Hayes, who was notoriously averse
to parting with his money, and was especially fearful of a public
subscription.
"There is something more than mere arrears--much more--"
"Ay, there is," emphatically declared Mr. McFettridge, rising
straight and stiff. "I'm for plain speakin'. The finances is not
the worst about this congregation. The congregation has fallen off.
Other churches in this village has good congregations. Why shouldn't
we? The truth is, Mr. Chairman,"--Mr. McFettridge's voice rolled deep
and sonorous over the audience--"we want a popular preacher--a
preacher that draws--a preacher with some pep."
"Hear! hear!" cried Mr. Boggs. "Pep's what we want. That's it--
pep."
"Pep," echoed the chairman. "Exactly so, pep."
"More than that," continued Mr. McFettridge, "we want a minister
that's a good mixer--one that stands in with the boys."
"Hear! Hear!" cried Mr. Boggs again.
"A mixer! Exactly!" agreed the chairman. "A mixer!" nodding
pleasantly at Mr. Boggs.
"And another thing I will say," continued Mr. McFettridge, "now
that I am on my feet. We want a preacher that will stick to his
job--that will preach the gospel and not go meddlin' with other
matters--with politics and such like."
"Or prohibition," shouted Harry Hobbs from the rear, to the
undiluted joy of the youngsters in his vicinity.
The minister shook his head at him.
"Yes, prohibition," answered Mr. McFettridge, facing toward the
rear of the church defiantly. "Let him stick to his preaching the
gospel; I believe the time has come for a change and I'm prepared to
make a motion that we ask our minister to resign, and that motion I
now make."
"Second the motion," cried Mr. Boggs promptly.
"You have heard the motion," said the chairman, with business-like
promptitude. "Are you ready for the question?"
"Question," said Mr. Hayes, after a few moments' silence, broken by
the shuffling of some members in their seats, and by the audible
whispering of Mrs. Innes, evidently exhorting her husband to action.
"Then all those in favour of the motion will please--"
Then from behind the organ a little voice piped up, "Does this
mean, Mr. Chairman, that we lose our minister?"
It was Miss Quigg, a lady whose years no gallantry could set below
forty, for her appearance indicated that she was long past the bloom
of her youth. She was thin, almost to the point of frailness, with
sharp, delicately cut features; but the little chin was firm, and a
flash of the brown eyes revealed a fiery soul within. Miss Quigg was
the milliner and dressmaker of the village, and was herself a walking
model of her own exquisite taste in clothes and hats. It was only her
failing health that had driven her to abandon a much larger sphere
than her present position offered, but even here her fame was such as
to draw to her little shop customers from the villages round about for
many miles.
"Does this mean, sir, that Mr. Dunbar will leave us?" she repeated.
"Well,--yes, madam--that is, Miss, I suppose, in a way--practically
it would amount to that."
"Will you tell me yes or no, please," Miss Quigg's neat little
figure was all a-quiver to the tips of her hat plumes.
"Well," said the chairman, squirming under the unpleasant
experience of being forced to a definite answer, "I suppose,--yes."
Miss Quigg turned from the squirming and smiling Mr. Pilley in
contempt.
"Then," she said, "I say no. And I believe there are many here
who would say no--and men, too." The wealth of indignation and
contemptuous scorn infused into the word by which the difference in
sex of the human species was indicated, made those unhappy individuals
glance shamefacedly at each other--"only they are too timid, the
creatures! or too indifferent."
Again there was an exchange of furtive glances and smiles and an
uneasy shifting of position on the part of "the creatures."
"But if you give them time, Mr. Chairman, I believe they will
perhaps get up courage enough to speak."
Miss Quigg sat down in her place behind the organ, disappearing
quite from view except for the tips of her plumes, whose rapid and
rhythmic vibrations were eloquent of the beating of her gallant
little heart.
"Exactly so," said the chairman, in confused but hearty
acquiescence. "Perhaps some one will say something."
Then Mr. Innes, forced to a change of position by the physical
discomfort caused by his wife's prodding, rose and said,
"I dinna see the need o' any change. Mr. Dunbar is no a great
preacher, but Ah doot he does his best. And the bairns all like
him."
Then the congregation had a thrill. In the back seat rose Harry
Hobbs.
"I'm near forty years old," he cried, in a high nasal tone that
indicated a state of extreme nervous tension, "and I never spoke in
meetin' before. I ain't had no use for churches and preachers, and I
guess they hadn't no use for me. You folks all know me. I've been in
this burg for near eight years, and I was a drinkin', swearin',
fightin' cuss. This preacher came into the barn one day when I was
freezin' to death after a big spree. He tuk me home with him and kep'
me there for two weeks, settin' up nights with me, too. Let me be,"
he said impatiently to Barry, who was trying to pull him down to his
seat. "I'm agoin' to speak this time if it kills me. Many a time I
done him dirt sence then, but he stuck to me, and never quit till he
got me turned 'round. I was goin' straight to hell; he says I'm goin'
to heaven now." Here he laughed with a touch of scorn. "I dunno.
But, by gum! if you fire him and do him dirt, I don't know what'll
become of me, but I guess I'll go straight to hell again."
"No, Harry, no you won't. You'll keep right on, Harry, straight to
heaven." It was the preacher's voice, full of cheery confidence.
Mrs. Innes was audibly sniffling; Mrs. Stewart Duff wiping her
eyes. It was doubtless this sight that brought her husband to his
feet.
"I don't quite know what the trouble is here," he said. "I
understand there are arrears. I heard some criticism of the
minister's preaching. I can't say I care much for it myself, but I
want to say right here that there are other things wanted in a
minister, and this young fellow has got some of them. If he stays,
he gets my money; if he doesn't, no one else does. I'll make you
gentlemen who are kicking about finances a sporting proposition. I'm
willing to double my subscription, if any other ten men will cover my
ante."
"I'll call you," said Neil Fraser, "and I'll raise you one."
"I'm willing to meet Mr. Duff and Mr. Fraser," said Miss Quigg,
rising from behind her organ with a triumphant smile on her face.
"I ain't got much money," said Harry Hobbs, "but I'll go you just
half what I earn if you'll meet me on that proposition."
"Ah may say," said Mr. Innes, yielding to his wife's vigorous vocal
and physical incitations, "A'm prepair-r-ed to mak' a substantial
increase in my subscreeption--that is, if necessary," he added
cautiously.
Then Barry came forward from the back of the church and stood
before the platform. After looking them over for a few moments in
silence, he said, in a voice clear, quiet, but with a ring in it that
made it echo in every heart:
"Had it not been for these last speeches, it would have been
unnecessary to allow the motion to go before you. I could not have
remained where I am not wanted. But now I am puzzled, I confess, I
am really puzzled to know what to do. I am not a great preacher, I
know, but then there are worse. I don't, at least I think I don't,
talk nonsense. And I am not what Mr. McFettridge calls a 'good
mixer.' On the other hand, I think Mr. Innes is right when he says
the bairns like me; at least, it would break"--he paused, his lip
quivering, then he went on quietly--"it would be very hard to think
they didn't."
"They do that, then," said Mrs. Innes, emphatically.
"So you see, it is really very difficult to know what to do. I
would hate to go away, but it might be right to go away. I suggest
you let me have a week to think it over. Can you wait that long?"
His handsome, boyish face, alight with a fine glow of earnestness
and sincerity, made irresistible appeal to all but those who for
personal reasons were opposed to him.
"You see," he continued, in a tone of voice deliberative and quite
detached, "there are a number of things to think about. Those
arrears, for instance, are hardly my fault--at least, not altogether.
I was looking over the treasurer's books the other day, and I was
surprised to find how many had apparently quite forgotten to pay
their church subscription. It is no doubt just an oversight. For
instance," he added, in the confidential tone of one imparting
interesting and valuable information, "you will be surprised to
learn, Mr. Duff, that you are twenty-five dollars behind in your
payments."
At this Neil Fraser threw back his head with a loud laugh.
"Touche!" he said, in a joyous undertone.
The minister looked at him in surprise, and went on, "And while Mr.
Innes and Miss Quigg are both paid up in full, Mr. Hayes has
apparently neglected to pay his last quarter."
"Hit him again," murmured Harry Hobbs, while Mr. Hayes rose in
virtuous indignation.
"I protest, Mr. Chairman!" he cried, "against these personalities."
"Oh, you quite mistake me, Mr. Hayes," said the preacher, "these
are not personalities. I am simply showing how easy it is for
arrears to arise, and that it may not be my fault at all. Of course,
it may be right for me to resign. I don't know about that yet, but I
want to be very sure. It would be easier to resign, but I don't want
to be a quitter."
"I move we adjourn," said Neil Fraser.
"I second the motion," said Stewart Duff. The motion was carried,
and the meeting adjourned.
At the door the minister stood shaking hands with all as they
passed out, making no distinction in the heartiness with which he
greeted all his parishioners. To Miss Quigg, however, he said,
"Thank you. You were splendidly plucky."
"Nonsense!" cried the little lady, the colour flaming in her faded
cheeks. "But," she added hastily, "you did that beautifully, and he
deserved it, the little beast!"
"Solar plexus!" said Neil Fraser, who was immediately behind Miss
Quigg.
The minister glanced from one to the other in perplexity, as they
passed out of the door.
"But, you know, I was only--"
"Oh, yes, we know," cried Miss Quigg. "But if those men would only
take hold! Oh, those men!" She turned upon Neil Fraser and shook
her head at him violently.
"I know, Miss Quigg. We are a hopeless and helpless lot. But
we're going to reform."
"You need to, badly," she said. "But you need some one to reform
you. Look at Mr. Duff there, how vastly improved he is," and she
waved her hand to that gentleman, who was driving away with his wife
in their buckboard.
"He is a perfect dear," sighed Mrs. Duff, as she bowed to the
minister. "And you, too, Stewart," she added, giving his arm a
little squeeze, "you said just the right thing when those horrid
people were going to turn him out."
"Say! Your preacher isn't so bad after all," said her husband.
"Wasn't that a neat one for old Hayes?"
"He rather got you, though, Stewart."
"Yes, he did, by Jove! Not the first time, either, he's done it.
But I must look after that. Say, he's the limit for freshness
though. Or is it freshness? I'm not quite sure."
"Will he stay with us?" said his wife. "I really do hope he will."
"Guess he'll stay all right. He won't give up his job," said her
husband.
But next week proved Mr. Duff a poor prophet, for the minister
after the service informed his people that he had come to the
conclusion that another man might get better results as minister of
the congregation; he had therefore handed in his resignation to the
Presbytery.
It was a shock to them all, but he adhered to his resolution in
spite of tearful lamentations from the women, wide-eyed amazement and
dismay from the bairns of the congregation, and indignation, loudly
expressed, from Neil Fraser and Stewart Duff, and others of their
kind.
"Well," said Miss Quigg, struggling with indignant tears, as she
was passing out of the church, "you won't see Harry Hobbs in this
church again, nor me, either."
"Oh, yes, Miss Quigg, Harry has promised me that he will stick by
the church, and that he will be there every Sunday. And so will you,
dear Miss Quigg. I know you. You will do what is right."
But that little lady, with her head very erect and a red spot
burning in each faded cheek, passed out of the church saying nothing,
the plumes on her jaunty little hat quivering defiance and wrath
against "those men, who had so little spunk as to allow a little beast
like Hayes to run them."
"Well, dad," said Barry next evening as they were sitting in the
garden after tea, "I feel something like Mohammed's coffin, detached
from earth but not yet ascended into heaven. It's unpleasant to be
out of a job. I confess I shall always cherish a more intelligent
sympathy henceforth for the great unemployed. But cheer up, dad! You
are taking this thing much too seriously. The world is wide, and
there is something waiting me that I can do better than any one else."
But the father had little to say. He felt bitterly the humiliation
to which his son had been subjected.
Barry refused to see the humiliation.
"Why should I not resign if I decide it is my duty so to do? And
why, on the other hand, should not they have the right to terminate
my engagement with them when they so desire? That's democratic
government."
"But good Lord, Barry!" burst out his father, with quite an unusual
display of feeling; "to think that a gentleman should hold his
position at the whim of such whippersnappers as Hayes, Boggs et hoc
genus omne. And more than that, that I should have to accept as my
minister a man who would be the choice of cattle like that."
"After all, dad, we are ruled by majorities in this age and in this
country. That is at once the glory and the danger of democratic
government. There is no better way discovered as yet. And besides,
I couldn't go on here, dad, preaching Sunday after Sunday to people
who I felt were all the time saying, 'He's no good'; to people, in
short, who could not profit by my preaching."
"Because it had no pep, eh?" said his father with bitter scorn.
"Do you know, dad, I believe that's what is wrong with my
preaching: it hasn't got pep. What pep is, only the initiated know.
But the long and the short of this thing is, it is the people that
must be satisfied. It is they who have to stand your preaching, they
who pay the piper. But cheer up, dad, I have no fear for the future."
"Nor have I, my boy, not the slightest. I hope you did not think
for a moment, my son," he added with some dignity, "that I was in
doubt about your future."
"No, no, dad. We both feel a little sore naturally, but the future
is all right."
"True, my dear boy, true. I was forgetting myself. As you say,
the world is wide and your place is waiting."
"Hello! here comes my friend, Mr. Duff," said Barry in a low voice.
"He was ready to throw Mr. McFettridge out of the meeting yesterday,
body and bones. Awfully funny, if it hadn't been in church. Wonder
what he wants! Seems in a bit of a hurry."
But hurry or not, it was a full hour before Mr. Duff introduced his
business. As he entered the garden he stood gazing about him in
amazed wonder and delight, and that hour was spent in company with
Mr. Dunbar, exploring the garden, Barry following behind lost in
amazement at the new phase of character displayed by their visitor.
"I have not had such a delightful evening, Mr. Dunbar, for years,"
said Duff, when they had finished making the round of the garden. "I
have heard about your garden, but I had no idea that it held such a
wealth and variety of treasures. I had something of a garden myself
in the old country, but here there is no time apparently for anything
but cattle and horses and money. But if you would allow me I should
greatly like to have the pleasure of bringing Mrs. Duff to see your
beautiful garden."
Mr. Duff was assured that the Dunbars would have the greatest
pleasure in receiving Mrs. Duff.
"Do bring her," said Barry, "and we can have a little music, too.
She is musical, I know. I hear her sing in church."
"Music! Why, she loves it. But she dropped her music when she
came here; there seemed to be no time, no time, no time. I wonder
sometimes-- Well, I must get at my business. It is this letter that
brings me. It is from an American whom you know, at least, he knows
you, a Mr. Osborne Howland of Pittsburgh."
Mr. Dunbar nodded.
"He is planning a big trip up the Peace River country prospecting
for oil and mines, and later hunting. He says you and your son
engaged to accompany him, and he asks me to complete arrangements
with you. I am getting Jim Knight to look after the outfit. You
know Jim, perhaps. He runs the Lone Pine ranch. Fine chap he is.
Knows all about the hunting business. Takes a party into the
mountains every year. He'll take Tom Fielding with him. I don't
know Fielding, but Knight does. Mr. Howland says there will be three
of their party. Far too many, but that's his business. I myself am
rather anxious to look after some oil deposits, and this will be a
good chance. What do you say?"
Father and son looked at each other.
"It would be fine, if we could manage it," said Mr. Dunbar, "but my
work is so pressing just now. A great many are coming in, and I am
alone in the office at present. When does he propose to start?"
"In six weeks' time. I hope you can come, Mr. Dunbar. I couldn't
have said so yesterday, but I can now. Any man with a garden like
this, the product of his own planning and working, is worth knowing.
So I do hope you can both come. By the way, Knight wants a camp
hand, a kind of roustabout, who can cook--a handy man, you know."
"I have him," said Barry. "Harry Hobbs."
"Hobbs? Boozes a bit, doesn't he?"
"Not now. Hasn't for six months. He's a new man. I can guarantee
him."
"You can, eh? Well, my experience is once a boozer always a
boozer."
"Oh," said Barry, "Hobbs is different. He is a member of our
church, you know."
"No, I didn't know. But I don't know that that makes much
difference anyway," said Duff with a laugh. "I don't mean to be
offensive," he added.
"It does to Hobbs, he's a Christian man now. I mean a real
Christian, Mr. Duff."
"Well, I suppose there is such a thing. In fact, I've known one or
two, but--well, if you guarantee him I'll take him."
"I will guarantee him," said Barry.
"Let me have your answer to-morrow," said Duff as he bade them
good-night.
The Dunbars discussed the matter far into the night. It was
clearly impossible for Mr. Dunbar to leave his work, and the only
question was whether or not Barry should make one of the party. Barry
greatly disliked the idea of leaving his father during the hot summer
months, as he said, "to slave away at his desk, and to slop away in
his bachelor diggings." He raised many objections, but one
consideration seemed to settle things for the Dunbars. To them a
promise was a promise.
"If I remember aright, Barry, we promised that we should join their
party on this expedition."
"Yes," added Barry quickly, "if our work permitted it."
"Exactly," said his father. "My work prevents me, your work does
not."
Hence it came that by the end of August Barry found himself in the
far northern wilds of the Peace River country, a hundred miles or so
from Edmonton, attached to a prospecting-hunting party of which Mr.
Osborne Howland was the nominal head, but of which the "boss" was
undoubtedly his handsome, athletic and impetuous daughter Paula. The
party had not been on the trail for more than a week before every
member was moving at her command, and apparently glad to do so.
The party were camped by a rushing river at the foot of a falls.
Below the falls the river made a wide eddy, then swept down in a
turbulent rapid for some miles. The landing was a smooth and
shelving rock that pitched somewhat steeply into the river.
The unfortunate Harry, who after the day's march had exchanged his
heavy marching boots with their clinging hobnails for shoes more
comfortable but with less clinging qualities, in making preparation
for the evening meal made his way down this shelving rock of water.
No sooner had he filled his pail than his foot slipped from under
him, and in an instant the pail and himself were in the swiftly
flowing river.
His cry startled the camp.
"Hello!" shouted Duff, with a great laugh. "Harry is in the drink!
I never knew he was so fond of water as all that. You've got to swim
for it now, old boy."
"Throw him something," said Knight.
Past them ran Barry, throwing off coat and vest.
"He can't swim," he cried, tearing at his boots. "Throw him a
line, some one." He ran down to the water's edge, plunged in, and
swam toward the unfortunate Harry, who, splashing wildly, was being
carried rapidly into the rough water.
"Oh, father, he will be drowned!" cried Paula, rushing toward a
canoe which was drawn up on the shore. Before any one could reach
her she had pushed it out and was steering over the boiling current
in Barry's wake. But after a few strokes of her paddle she found
herself driven far out into the current and away from the struggling
men. Paula had had sufficient experience with a canoe to handle it
with considerable ease in smooth water and under ordinary conditions,
but in the swirl of this rough and swift water the canoe took the
management of its course out of her hands, and she had all she could
do to keep afloat.
"For God's sake, men, get her!" cried Brand. "She will be drowned
before our eyes."
"Come on, Tom," cried Jim Knight, swinging another canoe into the
water. A glance he gave at the girl, another at the struggling men,
for by this time Barry could be seen struggling with the drowning
Hobbs.
"Get in, Tom," ordered Knight, taking the stern. "We will get the
men first. The girl is all right in the meantime."
"Get the girl!" commanded Brand. "For God's sake go for the girl,"
he entreated in a frenzy of distress.
"No," said Knight, "the men first. She's all right."
"Here," said Duff to Brand, pushing out the remaining canoe, "get
into the bow, and stop howling. Those men are in danger of being
drowned, but Knight will get them. We'll go for the girl."
It took but a few minutes for Knight and Fielding, who knew their
craft thoroughly and how to get the best out of her in just such an
emergency, to draw up upon Harry and his rescuer.
"Say, they are fighting hard," said Fielding. "That bloody little
fool is choking the life out of Dunbar. My God! they are out of
sight!"
"Go on," roared Knight. "Keep your eyes on the spot, and for
Heaven's sake, paddle!"
"They are up again! One of them is. It's Barry. The other is
gone. No, by Jove! he's got him! Hold on, Barry, we're coming,"
yelled Tom. "Stick to it, old boy!"
Swiftly the canoe sped toward the drowning men.
"They are gone this time for sure," cried Tom, as the canoe shot
over the spot where the men had last been seen.
"Not much!" said Knight, as reaching out of the stern he gripped
Barry by the hair. "Hold hard, Barry," he said quietly. "No monkey
work now or you'll drown us all." Immediately Barry ceased
struggling.
"Don't try to get in, Barry. We'll have to tow you ashore."
"All right, Jim," he said between his sobbing breaths. "Only--
hurry up--I've got him--here."
Knight reached down carefully, lifted Barry till his hand touched
the gunwale of the canoe.
"Not too hard, Barry," he said. "I'll ease you round to the stern.
Steady, boy, steady. Don't dump us."
"All right--Jim--but--he's under the water--here."
"Oh, never mind him. We'll get him all right. Can you hold on
now?" said Knight.
"Yes--I think so."
"Now, for God's sake, Tom, edge her into the shore. See that
little eddy there? Swing into that! You'll do it all right. Good
man!"
By this time Knight was able to get Harry's head above water.
In a few minutes they had reached the shore, and were working hard
over Harry's unconscious body, leaving Barry lying on the sand to
recover his strength. A long fight was necessary to bring the life
back into Harry, by which time Barry was sufficiently recovered to
sit up.
"Stay where you are, Barry, until we get this man back to camp,"
ordered Knight. "We'll light a bit of a fire for you."
"I'm warm enough," said Barry.
"Warm enough? You may be, but you will be better with a fire, and
you lie beside it till we get you. Don't move now."
"There's the other canoes coming," said Fielding. "They'll make
shore a little lower down. They're all right. Say, she's handling
that canoe like a man!"
"Who?" said Barry.
"Why, Miss Howland," said Fielding. "She was out after you like a
shot. She's a plucky one!"
Barry was on his feet in an instant, watching anxiously the
progress of the canoes, which were being slowly edged across the
river in a long incline toward the shore.
"They'll make it, all right," said Knight, after observing them for
a time. "Don't you worry. Just lie down by the fire. We'll be back
in a jiffy."
In an hour they were all safely back in camp, and sufficiently
recovered to discover the humorous points in the episode. But they
were all familiar enough with the treacherous possibilities of rough
and rapid water to know that for Hobbs and his deliverer at least,
there had been some serious moments during their fierce struggle in
the river.
"Another minute would have done," said Fielding to his friend, as
they sat over the fire after supper.
"A half a minute would have been just as good," said Knight. "I
got Barry by the hair under water. He was at his last kick, you bet!
And that rat," he added, smiling good naturedly at Harry, "was
dragging him down for the last time."
"I didn't know nothin' about it," said poor Harry, who was lying
stretched out by the fire, still very weak and miserable. "I didn't
know nothin' about it, or you bet I woudn't ha' done it. I didn't
know nothin' after he got me."
"After you got him, you mean," said Fielding.
"I guess that's right," said Harry, "but I wouldn't ha' got him if
he hadn't ha' got me first."
They all joined in the discussion of the event except Paula, who
sat distrait and silent, gazing into the fire, and Barry, who lay,
drowsy and relaxed, on a blanket not far from her side.
"You ought to go to bed," said Paula at length in a low voice to
him. "You need a good night's sleep."
"I'm too tired to sleep," said Barry. "I feel rather rotten, in
fact. I ought to feel very grateful, but somehow I just feel
rotten."
"Can one be grateful and feel rotten at the same time?" said Paula,
making talk.
"Behold me," replied Barry. "I know I am grateful, but I do feel
rotten. I don't think I have even thanked you for risking your life
for me," he added, turning toward her.
"Risking my life? Nonsense! I paddled 'round in the canoe for a
bit, till two strong men came to tow me in, and would have, if I had
allowed them. Thank the boys, who got you in time." She shuddered as
she spoke.
"I do thank them, and I do feel grateful to them," said Barry. "It
was rather a near thing. You see, I let him grip me. I choked him
off my arms, but he slid down to my thigh, and I could not kick him
off. Had to practically drown him. Even then he hung on."
"Oh, don't speak about it," she said with a shudder, covering her
face with her hands. "It was too awful, and it might have been the
end of you." Her voice broke a little.
"No, not an end," answered Barry, in a quiet voice. "Not the end
by a long way, not by a very long way."
"What do you mean? Oh, you are thinking of immortality, and all
that," said Paula. "It's a chilly, ghostly subject. It makes me
shiver. I get little comfort out of it."
"Ghostly it is, if you mean a thing of spirits," said Barry, "but
chilly! Why chilly?" Then he added to himself in an undertone: "I
wonder! I wonder! I wish sometimes I knew more."
"Sometimes?" cried Paula. "Always!" she added passionately. "It's
a dreadful business to me. To be suddenly snatched out of the light
and the warmth, away from the touch of warm fingers and the sight of
dear faces! Ah, I dread it! I loathe the thought of it. I hate it!"
"And yet," mused Barry, "somehow I cannot forget that out there
somewhere there is One, kindly, genial, true,--like my dad. How good
he has been to me--my dad, I mean, and that Other, too, has been good.
Somehow I think of them together. Yes, I am grateful to Him."
"Oh, God, you mean," said Paula, a little impatiently.
"Yes, to God. He saved me to-day. 'Saved,' I say. It is a queer
way to speak, after all. What I really ought to say is that God
thought it best that I should camp 'round here for a bit longer
before moving in nearer."
"Nearer?"
"Yes, into the nearer circle. Life moves 'round a centre, in outer
and inner circles. This is the outer circle. Nearer in there, it is
kindlier, with better light and clearer vision. 'We shall know even
as we are known.'" Barry mused on, as if communing with himself.
"But when you move in," said Paula, and there was no mistaking the
earnestness of her tone, "you break touch with those you love here."
"I don't know about that," answered Barry quickly.
"Oh, yes you do. You are out of all this,--all this," she swept
her hand at the world around her, "this good old world, all your joy
and happiness, all you love. Oh, that's the worst of it; you give up
your love. I hate it!" she concluded with vehemence sudden and
fierce, as she shook her fist towards the stars.
"Give up your love?" said Barry. "Not I! Not one good, honest
affection do I mean to give up, nor shall I."
"Oh, nonsense! Don't be religious. Just be honest," said Paula,
in a low, intense voice. "Let me speak to you. Suppose I--I love a
man with all my soul and body--and body, mind you, and he goes out, or
goes in, as you say. No matter, he goes out of my life. I lose him,
he is not here. I cannot feel and respond to his love. I cannot feel
his strong arms about me. My God!" Her voice came with increasing
vehemence. "I want his arms. I want him as he is. I want his body--I
cannot love a ghost. No! no!" she added in a low, hopeless voice.
"When he goes out I lose him, and lose him as mine forever. Oh, what
do I care for your spirit love! The old Greeks were right. They are
shades--shades, mere shades beyond the river. I don't want a shade.
I want a man, a strong, warm- hearted, brave man. Yes, a good man, a
man with a soul. But a MAN, not a SOUL. My God!" she moaned, "how
terrible it all is! And it came so near to us to-day. But I should
not be saying this to you, played out as you are. I am going to bed.
Good-night."
She put out her hand and gripped his in warm, strong, muscular
fingers. "Thank God, yes God, if you like, you are still--still in
this outer circle,"--she broke into a laugh, but there was little
mirth in her laughter--"this good old outer circle, yet awhile."
"Yes," said Barry simply but very earnestly, "thank God. It is a
good world. But with all my soul I believe there is a better, and
all that is best in love and life we shall take with us. Good-
night," he added, "and thank you, at least for the will and the
attempt to save my life."
"Sleep well," she said.
"I hope so," he replied, "but I doubt it."
His doubts, it turned out, were justified, for soon after midnight
Mr. Howland was aroused by Harry Hobbs in a terror of excitement.
"Will you come to Mr. Dunbar, sir?" he cried. "I think he is
dying."
"Dying?" Mr. Howland was out of his cot immediately and at Barry's
side. He found him fighting for breath, his eyes starting from his
head, a look of infinite distress on his face.
"My dear boy, what is it? Hobbs says you are dying."
"That con-con-founded--fool--shouldn't have--called you. I
forbade-- him," gasped Barry.
"But, my dear boy, what is the matter? Are you in pain?"
"No, no,--it's--nothing--only an old--friend come back--for a
call,--a brief one--let us--hope. It's only asthma. Looks bad--
feels worse--but really--not at all dangerous."
"What can be done, my boy?" asked Mr. Howland, greatly relieved, as
are most laymen, when the trouble can be named. It is upon the
terror inspired by the unknown that the medical profession lives.
"Tell Harry--to make--a hot drink," said Barry, but Harry had
already forestalled the request, and appeared with a steaming bowl.
"This will--help. Now--go to--bed, Mr. Howland. Do, please.--You
distress--me by remaining--there. Harry will--look after me.
Good-night."
Next morning Barry appeared at breakfast a little washed out in
appearance, but quite bright and announcing himself fit for anything.
The incident, however, was a determining factor in changing the
party's plans. Already they were behind their time schedule, to Mr.
Cornwall Brand's disgust. The party was too large and too heavily
encumbered with impedimenta for swift travel. Besides, as Paula said,
"Why rush? Are we not doing the Peace River Country? We are out for a
good time and we are having it." Paula was not interested in mines
and oil. She did not announce just what special interest was hers.
She was "having a good time" and that was reason enough for leisurely
travel. In consequence their provisions had run low.
It was decided to send forward a scouting party to the Hudson's Bay
Post some thirty miles further on to restock their commissariat.
Accordingly Knight and Fielding were despatched on this mission, the
rest of the party remaining in camp.
"A lazy day or two in camp is what we all need," said Mr. Howland.
"I confess I am quite used up myself, and therefore I know you must
all feel much the same."
On the fourth day the scouting party appeared.
"There's war!" cried Knight as he touched land. He flung out a
bundle of papers for Mr. Howland.
"War!" The word came back in tones as varied as those who uttered
it.
"War!" said Mr. Howland. "Between whom?"
"Every one, pretty much," said Knight. "Germany, France, Russia,
Austria, Servia, Belgium, and Britain."
"Britain!" said Barry and Duff at the same moment.
"Britain," answered Knight solemnly.
The men stood stock still, looking at each other with awed faces.
"War!" again said Barry. "With Germany!" He turned abruptly away
from the group and said, "I am going."
"Going! Going where?" said Mr. Howland.
"To the war," said Barry quietly.
"To the war! You? A clergyman?" said Mr. Howland.
"You? You going?" cried Paula. At the pain in her voice her
father and Brand turned and looked at her. Disturbed by what he saw,
her father began an excited appeal to Barry.
"Why, my dear sir, it would surely be most unusual for a man like
you to go to war," he began, and for quite ten minutes he proceeded
to set forth in fluent and excited speech a number of reasons why the
idea of Barry's going to war was absurd and preposterous to him. It
must be confessed that Barry was the only one of the men who appeared
to give much heed to him. They seemed to be dazed by the stupendous
fact that had been announced to them, and to be adjusting themselves
to that fact.
When he had finished his lengthy and excited speech Brand took up
the discourse.
"Of course you don't think of going immediately," he said. "We
have this expedition in hand."
The men made no reply. Indeed, they hardly seemed to hear him.
"You don't mean to say," continued Brand with a touch of
indignation in his voice, addressing Duff, the recognised leader of
the party, "that you would break your engagement with this party, Mr.
Duff?"
Duff glanced at him, then looked away in silence, studying the
horizon. The world was to him and to them all a new world within the
last few minutes.
His silence appeared to enrage Brand. He turned to Barry.
"Do you mean to tell me, sir, that you approve of this? Do you
consider it right and fair that these men should break their
engagement with us? We have gone to great expense, we have extremely
important interests at stake in this exploration."
Barry stood looking at him in silence, as if trying to take in
exactly what he meant, then in a low and awed tone he said:
"It is war! War with Germany!"
"We cannot help that," cried Brand. "What difference can this war
make to you here a hundred miles from civilisation? These men are
pledged to us."
"Their first pledge is to their country, sir," said Barry gravely.
"But why should you, a Canadian, take part in this war?" argued Mr.
Howland. "Surely this is England's war."
Then Barry appeared to awake as from a dream.
"Yes, it is England's war, it is Britain's war, and when Britain is
at war my country is at war, and when my country is at war I ought to
be there."
"God in heaven!" shouted Duff, striking him on the back, "you have
said it! My country is at war, and I must be there. As God hears
me, I am off to-day--now."
"Me, too!" said Knight with a shout.
"I'm going with you, sir," said little Harry Hobbs, ranging himself
beside Barry.
"Count me in," said Tom Fielding quietly. "I have a wife and three
kids, but--"
"My God!" gasped Duff. "My wife." His face went white. He had
not yet fully adjusted himself to the fact of war.
"Why, of course," said Mr. Howland, "you married men won't be
called upon. You must be reasonable. For instance you, Mr. Duff,
cannot leave your wife."
But Duff had recovered himself.
"My wife, sir? My wife would despise me if I stayed up here. Sir,
my wife will buckle on my belt and spurs and send me off to the war,"
cried Duff in a voice that shook as he spoke.
With a single stride Barry was at his side, offering both his
hands.
"Thank God for men like you! And in my soul I believe the Empire
has millions of them."
"Does your Empire demand that you desert those you have pledged
yourself to?" enquired Brand in a sneering tone.
"Oh, Cornwall!" exclaimed Paula, "how can you?"
"Why, Brand," said Mr. Howland, "that is unworthy of you."
"We will see you into safety, sir," said Duff, swinging round upon
Brand, "either to the Hudson's Bay Company's post, where you can get
Indians, or back to Edmonton, but not one step further on this
expedition do I go."
"Nor I," said Knight.
"Nor I," said Fielding.
"Nor I," said Barry.
"Nor I," said Harry Hobbs.
"You are quite right, sir," said Mr. Howland, turning to Barry. "I
apologise to you, sir, to all of you Canadians. I am ashamed to
confess that I did not at first get the full meaning of this terrific
thing that has befallen your Empire. Were it the U.S.A. that was in a
war of this kind, hell itself would not keep me from going to her aid.
Nor you either, Brand. Yes, you are right. Go to your war. God go
with you."
He shook hands solemnly with them one by one. "I only wish to God
that my country were with you, too, in this thing," he said when he
had performed this function.
"Father," cried Paula, "do you think for one minute that Uncle Sam
won't be in this? You put it down," she said, swinging 'round upon
Barry, "where it will jump at you some day: We will be with you in
this scrap for all we are worth."
"And now for the march," said Barry, who seemed almost to assume
command. Then removing his hat and lifting high his hand, he said in
a voice thrilling with solemn reverence, "God grant victory to the
right! God save the king!"
Instinctively the men took off their hats and stood with bared and
bent heads, as if sharing in a solemn ritual. They stood with
millions upon millions of their kin in the old mother lands, and
scattered wide upon the seas, stood with many millions more of
peoples and nations, pledging to this same cause of right, life and
love and all they held dear, and with hearts open to that all-
searching eye, praying that same prayer, "God grant victory to the
right. Amen and amen. We ask no other."
Then they faced to their hundred miles' trek en route to the war.
"Fifty miles--not too bad, boy, not too bad for a one day's go.
We'll camp right here at the portage. How is it, Knight?"
"Good place, Duff, right on that point. Good wood, good landing.
Besides there's a deuce of a portage beyond, which we can do after
supper to-night. How do you feel, Barry?" asked Knight. "Hard day,
eh?"
"Feeling fit, a little tired, of course, but good for another ten
miles," answered Barry.
"That's the stuff," replied Knight, looking at him keenly, "but,
see here, you must ease up on the carrying. You haven't quite got
over that ducking of yours."
"I'm fit enough," answered Barry, rather more curtly than his wont.
They brought the canoes up to the landing, and with the speed of
long practice unloaded them, and drew them upon the shore.
Knight approached Duff, and, pointing toward Barry, said quietly:
"I guess we'll have to ease him up a bit. That fight, you know,
took it out of him, and he always jumps for the biggest pack. We'd
better hold him back to-morrow a bit."
"Can't hold back any one," said Duff, with an oath. "We've got to
make it to-morrow night. There's the devil of a trip before us. That
big marsh portage is a heartbreaker, and there must be a dozen or
fifteen of them awaiting us, and we're going to get through--at least,
I am."
"All right," said Knight, with a quick flash of temper. "I'll stay
with you, only I thought we might ease him a bit."
"I'm telling you, we're going to get through," said Duff, with
another oath.
"You needn't tell me, Duff," said Knight. "Keep your shirt on."
"On or off, wet or dry, sink or swim, we're going to make that
train to-morrow, Knight. That's all about it."
Then Knight let himself go.
"See here, Duff. Do you want to go on to-night? If you do, hell
and blazes, say the word and I'm with you."
His face was white as he spoke. He seized a tump-line, swung the
pack upon his head, and set off across the portage.
"Come on, boys," he yelled. "We're going through to-night."
"Oh, hold up, Knight!" said Duff. "What the hell's eating you?
We'll grub first anyway."
"No," said Knight. "The next rapid is a bad bit of water, and if
we're going through to-night, I want that bit behind me, before it
gets too dark. So come along!"
"Oh, cut it out, Knight," said Duff, in a gruff but conciliatory
tone. "We'll camp right here."
"It's all the same to me," said Knight, flinging his pack down.
"When you want to go on, say the word. You won't have to ask me
twice."
Duff looked over the six feet of bone and sinew and muscle of the
young rancher, made as if to answer, paused a moment, changed his
mind, and said more quietly:
"Don't be an ass, Knight. I'm not trying to hang your shirt on a
tree."
"You know damned well you can't," said Knight, who was still white
with passion.
"Oh, come off," replied Duff. "Anyway, I don't see what young
Dunbar is to you. We must get through to-morrow night. The overseas
contingent is camping at Valcartier, according to these papers and
whatever happens I am going with that contingent."
Knight made no reply. He was a little ashamed of his temper. But
during the past two days he had chafed under the rasp of Duff's
tongue and his overbearing manner. He resented too his total
disregard of Barry's weariness, for in spite of his sheer grit, the
pace was wearing the boy down.
"We ought to reach the railroad by six to-morrow," said Duff,
renewing the conversation, and anxious to appease his comrade.
"There's a late train, but if we catch the six we shall make home in
good time. Hello, what's this coming?"
At his words they all turned and looked in the direction in which
he pointed.
Down a stream, which at this point came tumbling into theirs in a
dangerous looking rapid, came a canoe with a man in the centre
guiding it as only an expert could.
"By Jove! He can't make that drop," said Knight, walking down
toward the landing.
They all stood watching the canoe which, at the moment, hung poised
upon the brink of the rapid like a bird for flight. Even as Knight
spoke the canoe entered the first smooth pitch at the top. Two long,
swallow-like sweeps, then she plunged into the foam, to appear a
moment later fighting her way through the mass of crowding, crested
waves, which, like white-fanged wolves upon a doe, seemed to be
hurling themselves upon her, intent upon bearing her down to
destruction.
"By the living, jumping Jemima!" said Fielding, in an awe-stricken
tone, "she's gone!"
"She's through!" cried Knight.
"Great Jehoshaphat!" said Fielding. "He's a bird!"
With a flip or two of his paddle, the stranger shot his canoe
across the stream, and floated quietly to the landing.
Barry ran down to meet him.
"I say, that was beautifully done," he cried, taking the nose of
the canoe while the man stepped ashore and stood a moment looking
back at the water.
"A leetle more to the left would have been better, I think. She
took some water," he remarked in a slow voice, as if to himself.
He was a strange-looking creature. He might have stepped out of
one of Fenimore Cooper's novels. Indeed, as Barry's eyes travelled
up and down his long, bony, stooping, slouching figure, his mind
leaped at once to the Pathfinder.
"Come far?" asked Duff, approaching the stranger.
"Quite a bit," he answered, in a quiet, courteous voice, pausing a
moment in his work.
"Going out?" enquired Duff.
"Not yet," he said. "Going up the country first to The Post."
"Ah, we have just come down from there," said Duff. "We started
yesterday morning," he added, evidently hoping to surprise the man.
"Yes," he answered in a quiet tone of approval. "Nice little run!
Nice little run! Bit of a hurry, I guess," he ventured
apologetically.
"You bet your life, we just are. This damned war makes a man feel
like as if the devil was after him," said Duff.
"War!" The man looked blankly at him. "Who's fightin'?"
"Why, haven't you heard? It's been going on for a month. We heard
only three days ago as we were going further up the country. It
knocked our plans endways, and here we are chasing ourselves to get
out."
"War!" said the man again. "Who's fightin'? Uncle Sam after them
Mexicans?"
"No. Mexicans, hell!" exclaimed Duff. "Germany and Britain."
"Britain!" The slouching shoulders lost their droop. "Britain!"
he said, straightening himself up. "What's she been doin' to
Germany?"
"What's Germany been doing to her, and to Belgium, and to Servia,
and to France?" answered Duff, in a wrathful voice. "She's been
raising hell all around. You haven't seen the papers, eh? I have
them all here."
The stranger seemed dazed by the news. He made no reply, but
getting out his frying-pan and tea-pail, his only utensils, he set
about preparing his evening meal.
"I say," said Duff, "won't you eat with us? We're just about
ready. We'll be glad to have you."
The man hesitated a perceptible moment. In the wilds men do not
always accept invitations to eat. Food is sometimes worth more than
its weight in gold.
"I guess I will, if you've lots of stuff," he said at length.
"We've lots of grub, and we expect to be home by tomorrow night
anyway, if things go all right. You are very welcome."
The man laid down his frying-pan and tea-pail, and walked with Duff
toward his camp.
"Are you goin'?" he enquired.
"Going?"
"To the war. Guess some of our Canadian boys will be goin' likely,
eh?"
"Going," cried Duff. "You bet your life I'm going. But, come on.
We'll talk as we eat. And we can't stay long, either."
Duff introduced the party.
"My name's McCuaig," said the stranger.
"Scotch, I guess?" enquired Duff.
"My father came out with The Company. I was born up north. Never
been much out, but I read the papers," he added quickly, as if to
correct any misapprehension as to his knowledge of the world and its
affairs. "My father always got the Times and the Spectator, and I've
continued the habit."
"Any one who reads the Times and the Spectator," said Barry, "can
claim to be a fairly well-read man. My father takes the Spectator,
too."
As they sat down to supper, he noticed that McCuaig took off his
old grey felt and crossed himself before beginning toast.
As a matter of courtesy, Barry had always been asked to say grace
before meals while with the Howland party. This custom, however, had
been discontinued upon this trip. They had no time for meals. They
had "just grabbed their grub and run," as Harry Hobbs said.
While they ate, Duff kept a full tide of conversation going in
regard to the causes of the war and its progress, as reported in the
papers. Barry noticed that McCuaig's comments, though few, revealed a
unique knowledge of European political affairs during the last quarter
of a century. He noticed too that his manners at the table were those
of a gentleman.
After supper they packed their stuff over the long portage, leaving
their tent and sleeping gear, with their food, however, to be taken
in the morning. For a long time they sat over the fire, Barry
reading, for McCuaig's benefit, the newspaper accounts of the Belgian
atrocities, the story of the smashing drive of the German hosts, and
the retreat of the British army from Mons.
"What," exclaimed McCuaig, "the British soldiers goin' back!
Runnin' away from them Germans!"
"Well, the Germans are only about ten to one, not only in men but
in guns, and in this war it's guns that count. Guns can wipe out an
army of heroes as easily as an army of cowards," said Duff.
"And them women and children," said McCuaig. "Are they killing
them still?"
"You're just right, they are," replied Duff, "and will till we stop
them."
McCuaig's eyes were glowing with a deep inner light. They were
wonderful eyes, quick, darting, straight-looking and fearless, the
eyes of a man who owes his life to his vigilance and his courage.
Before turning in for the night, Barry went to the river's edge,
and stood looking up at the stars holding their steadfast watch over
the turbulent and tossing waters below.
"Quiet, ain't they?" said a voice at his shoulder.
"Why, you startled me, Mr. McCuaig; I never heard you step."
McCuaig laughed his quiet laugh.
"Got to move quietly in this country," he said, "if you are going
to keep alive."
A moment or so he stood by Barry's side, looking up with him at the
stars.
"No fuss, up there," he said, interpreting Barry's mood and
attitude. "Not like that there pitchin', tossin', threatenin'
water."
"No," said Barry, "but though they look quiet, I suppose if we
could really see, there is a most terrific whirling of millions of
stars up there, going at the rate of thousands of miles a minute."
"Millions of 'em, and all whirlin' about," said McCuaig in an awe-
stricken voice. "It's a wonder they don't hit."
"They don't hit because they each keep their own orbit," said
Barry, "and they obey the laws of their existence."
"Orbut," enquired McCuaig. "What's that?"
"The trail that each star follows," said Barry.
"I see," said McCuaig, "each one keeps its own trail, its own
orbut, and so there's peace up there. And I guess there'd be peace
down here if folks did the same thing. It's when a man gets out of
his own orbut and into another fellow's that the scrap begins. I
guess that's where Germany's got wrong."
"Something like that," replied Barry.
"And sometimes," continued McCuaig, his eyes upon the stars, "when
a little one comes up against a big one, he gets busted, eh?"
Barry nodded.
"And a big one, when he comes up against a bigger one gets pretty
badly jarred, eh?"
"I suppose so," said Barry.
"That's what's goin' to happen to Germany," said McCuaig.
"Germany's a very powerful nation," said Barry. "The most powerful
military nation in the world."
"What!" said McCuaig. "Bigger than Britain?"
"Britain has two or three hundred thousand men in her army; Germany
has seven millions or more, with seventy millions of people behind
them, organised for war. Of course, Britain has her navy, but then
Germany has the next biggest in the world. Oh, it's going to be a
terrific war."
"I say," said McCuaig, putting his hand on Barry's shoulder. "You
don't think it will bother us any to lick her?"
"It will be the most terrible of all Britain's wars," replied
Barry. "It will take every ounce of Britain's strength."
"You don't tell me!" exclaimed McCuaig, as if struck by an entirely
new idea. "Say, are you really anxious, young man?"
"I am terribly anxious," replied Barry. "I know Germany a little.
I spent a year there. She is a mighty nation, and she is ready for
war."
"She is, eh!" replied McCuaig thoughtfully. He wandered off to the
fire without further word, where, rolling himself in his blanket and
scorning the place in the tent offered him by Duff, he made himself
comfortable for the night.
At the break of day Duff was awakened by the smell of something
frying. Over the fire bent McCuaig, busy preparing a breakfast of
tea, bacon and bannocks, together with thick slices of fat pork.
Breakfast was eaten in haste. The day's work was before them, and
there was no time for talk. In a very few minutes they stood ready
for their trip across the portage.
With them stood McCuaig. His blanket roll containing his grub,
with frying-pan and tea-pail attached, lay at his feet; his rifle
beside it.
For a moment or two he stood looking back up the stream by which,
last night, he had come. Then he began tying his paddles to the
canoe thwarts in preparation for packing it across the portage.
As he was tying on the second paddle, Duff's eye fell on him.
"What's up, McCuaig?" he said. "Aren't you going up to the Post?"
"No, I guess I ain't goin' up no more," replied McCuaig slowly.
"What do you mean? You aren't going back home?"
"No. My old shack will do without me for a while, I guess.--Say,"
he continued, facing around upon Duff and looking him squarely in the
face, "this young chap says"--putting his hand upon Barry's
shoulder--"Britain is going to have a hell of a time licking Germany
back into her own orbut. Them papers said last night that Canada was
going in strong. Do you think she could use a fellow like me?"
A silence fell upon the group of men.
"What! Do you mean it, McCuaig?" said Duff at length.
The man turned his thin, eagle face toward the speaker, a light in
his eyes.
"Why, ain't you goin'? Ain't every one goin' that can? If a
fellow stood on one side while his country was fightin', where would
he live when it's all over? He read out of the papers that them
Germans were shootin' women and children. So--" his face began to
work, "am I goin' to stand by and ask some one else to make 'em quit?
No, by God!"
The men stood watching his face, curiously twisted and quivering.
Then without a word Duff seized his pack, and swung into the trail,
every man following him in his order. Without pausing, except for a
brief half hour at noon, and another later in the day for eating, they
pressed the trail, running what rapids they could and portaging the
others, until in the early evening they saw, far away, a dirty blur on
the skyline.
"Hurrah!" yelled Fielding. "Good old firebus, waiting for us."
"Somebody run ahead and hold her," said Duff.
Barry flung his pack down and started away.
"Come back here, Barry," cried Knight. "You're not fit. You're
all in."
"That's right, too," said McCuaig. "I guess I'll go."
And off he set with the long, shuffling, tireless trot with which,
for a hundred years, the "runners of the woods" have packed their
loads and tracked their game in the wilds of northwestern Canada.
The city of Edmonton was in an uproar, its streets thronged with
excited men, ranchers and cowboys from the ranches, lumberjacks from
the foothill camps, men from the mines, trappers with lean, hard
faces, in weird garb, from the north.
The news from the front was ominous. Belgium was a smoking waste.
Her skies were black with the burning of her towns, villages and
homesteads, her soil red with the blood of her old men, her women and
children. The French armies, driven back in rout from the Belgian
frontier, were being pounded to death by the German hordes. Fortresses
hitherto considered impregnable were tumbling like ninepins before the
terrible smashing of Austrian and German sixteen-inch guns. Already
von Kluck with his four hundred thousand of conquering warriors was at
the gates of Paris.
Most ominous of all, the British army, that gallant, little
sacrificial army, of a scant seventy-five thousand men, holding like
a bulldog to the flank of von Bulow's mighty army, fifty times as
strong, threatened by von Kluck on the left flank and by von Housen on
the right, was slowing down the German advance, but was itself being
slowly ground into the bloody dust of the northern and eastern roads
of Northern and Eastern France.
Black days these were for the men of British blood. Was the world
to see something new in war? Were Germans to overcome men of the
race of Nelson, and Wellington and Colin Campbell?
At home, hundreds of thousands were battering at the recruiting
offices. In the Dominions of the Empire overseas it was the same. In
Canada a hundred thousand men were demanding a place in the first
Canadian contingent of thirty-five thousand, now almost ready to sail.
General Sam at Ottawa was being snowed under by entreating,
insistent, cajoling, threatening telegrams. Already northern Alberta
had sent two thousand men. The rumour in Edmonton ran that there were
only a few places left to be filled in the north Alberta quota. For
these few places hundreds of men were fighting in the streets.
Alighting from their train, Duff and his men stood amazed, aghast,
gazing upon the scene before them. Duff climbed a wagon wheel and
surveyed the crowd packing the street in front of the bulletin
boards.
"No use, this way, boys. We'll have to go around. Come on."
They went on. Up side streets and lanes, through back yards and
shops they went until at length they emerged within a hundred yards
of the recruiting office.
Duff called his men about him.
"Boys, we'll have to bluff them," he said. "You're a party of
recruits that Col. Kavanagh expects. You've been sent for. I'm
bringing you in under orders. Look as much like soldiers as you can,
and bore in like hell. Come on!"
They began to bore. At once there was an uproar, punctuated with
vociferous and varied profanity.
Duff proved himself an effective leader.
"Here, let me pass," he shouted into the backs of men's heads.
"I'm on duty here. I must get through to Colonel Kavanagh. Keep up
there, men; keep your line! Stand back, please! Make way!"
His huge bulk, distorted face and his loud and authoritative voice
startled men into temporary submission, and before they could recover
themselves he and his little company of hard-boring men were through.
Twenty-five yards from the recruiting office a side rush of the
crowd caught them.
"They've smashed the barricades," a boy from a telegraph pole
called out.
Duff and his men fought to hold their places, but they became
conscious of a steady pressure backwards.
"What's doing now, boy?" shouted Duff to the urchin clinging to the
telegraph pole.
"The fusileers--they are sticking their bayonets into them."
Before the line of bayonets the crowd retreated slowly, but Duff
and his company held their ground, allowing the crowd to ebb past
them, until they found themselves against the line of bayonets.
"Let me through here, sergeant, with my party," said Duff. "I'm
under orders of Colonel Kavanagh."
The sergeant, an old British army man, looked them over.
"Have you an order, sir--a written order, I mean?"
"No," said Duff. "I haven't, but the colonel expects us. He is
waiting for me now."
"Sorry, sir," replied the sergeant, "my orders are to let no one
through without a written pass."
Duff argued, stormed, threatened, swore; but to no purpose. The
N. C. O. knew his job.
"Send a note in," suggested Barry in Duff's ear.
"Good idea," replied Duff, and wrote hurriedly.
"Here, take this through to your colonel," he said, passing the
note to the sergeant.
Almost immediately Colonel Kavanagh came out and greeted Duff
warmly.
"Where in this wide creation have you been, Duff?" he exclaimed.
"I've wanted you terribly."
"Here I am now, then," answered Duff. "Six of us. We're going
with you."
"It can't be done," said the colonel. "I have only twenty places
left; every one promised ten times over."
"That makes it easy, Kavanagh. You can give six of them to us."
"Duff, it simply can't be done. You know I'd give it to you if I
could. I've wires from Ottawa backing up a hundred applicants,
actually ordering me to put them on. No! It's no use," continued
the colonel, holding up his hand. "Look here, I'll give you a
pointer. We have got word to-day that there's to be a second
contingent. Neil Fraser is out there in your district, Wapiti,
raising a company of two hundred and fifty men. We have stripped
that country bare already, so he's up against it. He wants Wapiti
men, he says. They are no better than any other, but he thinks they
are. You get out there to-night, Duff, and get in on that thing. You
will get a commission, too. Now hike! Hike! Go! Honest to God,
Duff, I want you with my battalion, and if I can work it afterwards,
I'll get you exchanged, but your only chance now is Wapiti. Go, for
God's sake, go quick!"
"What do you say, boys?" asked Duff, wheeling upon his men.
"I say, go!" said Knight.
In this decision they all agreed.
"Go it is," said Duff. "Right about turn. Good luck, Kavanagh,
damn you. I see you have got a good sergeant there."
"Who? McDowell? None better. You couldn't beat him, eh?" said
the colonel with a grin.
The sergeant stood at attention, with a wooden face.
"He's the kind of man they want in the front lines," said Duff.
"The devil himself couldn't break through where he is."
"That's why I have him. Good luck. Good-bye!"
Throughout the night they marched, now and then receiving a lift
from a ranch wagon, and in the grey of the morning, weary, hungry,
but resolute for a place in the Wapiti company, they made the
village.
Early as it was, Barry found his father astir, with breakfast in
readiness.
"Hello, boy!" cried his father running to him with outstretched
hands.
"Hello, dad!" answered Barry. His father threw a searching glance
over his son's face as he shook his hand warmly.
"Not a word, Barry, until you eat. Not a word. Go get ready for
your bath. I'll have it for you in a minute. No, not one word.
Quick. March. That is the only word these days. As you eat I'll
give you the news."
Resolutely he refused to talk until he saw his son begin upon his
breakfast. Then he poured forth a stream of news. The whole country
was aflame with war enthusiasm. Alberta had offered half a million
bushels of oats for the imperial army, and a thousand horses or more.
The Calgary district had recruited two thousand men, the Edmonton
district as many more. All over Canada, from Vancouver to Halifax, it
was the same.
From the Wapiti district twenty-six ranchers, furnishing their own
horses, had already gone. Ewen Innes was in Edmonton. His brother
Malcolm was in uniform, too, and his young brother Jim was keen to
enlist. Neil Fraser was busy raising a company of Wapiti men. Young
Pickles and McCann had joined up as buglers.
And so the stream flowed, Barry listening with grave face but
making no response.
"And I'm glad you're back, my boy. I'm glad you're back," said his
father, clapping him on the shoulder.
The rest of the meal was eaten in silence. They were having each
his own thoughts, and for the first time in their life together, they
kept their thoughts to themselves.
"You're going to your office, Dad," said Barry, when they had
cleared away, and set the house in order.
"No, the office is closed, and will be for some time, I imagine.
I'm busy with Neil Fraser. I'm acting paymaster, quartermaster,
recruiting sergeant, and half a dozen other things."
"I'll go down with you," said Barry, as his father rose to go.
His father came back to him, put his hands on his shoulders, and
said:
"Barry, I want you to go to bed."
"Nonsense, dad. I'm all right. I'm going downtown with you."
"Barry," said his father, "we have hard times before us, and you
must be fit. I ask you to go to bed and sleep there this forenoon.
You're half asleep now. This afternoon we shall face up to our job."
His father's voice was quietly authoritative and Barry yielded.
"All right, dad. I'll do as you say, and this afternoon--well,
we'll see."
At the noonday meal they were conscious of a mutual restraint. For
the first time in their lives they were not opening to each other
their innermost souls. The experience was as distressing as it was
unusual. The father, as if in dread of silence, was obviously
exerting himself to keep a stream of talk flowing. Barry was
listening with a face very grave and very unlike the bright and
buoyant face he usually carried. They avoided each other's eyes, and
paid little heed to their food.
At length Barry pushed back his chair.
"Will you excuse me, dad," he said. "I think I shall step out a
moment into the garden."
"Do, Barry," said his father, in obvious relief. "You are fagged
out, my boy."
"Thanks, dad. I am a bit played out."
"And take it easy this afternoon, Barry. To-night you will tell me
about your trip, and--and--we'll have a talk."
"Good old dad!" said Barry. "You do understand a chap. See you
later, then," he called back as he passed through the door.
His father sat gazing before him for some moments with a deep
shadow on his face.
"There is something wrong with that boy," he said to himself. "I
wish I knew what it was."
He set his house in order, moving heavily as if a sudden weight of
years had fallen upon his shoulders, and took his way slowly down the
street.
"I wonder what it is," he mused, refusing to give form to a
horrible thought that hovered like a spectre about the windows of his
soul.
The first glance at his son's face at the time of the evening meal
made his heart sing within him.
"He's all right again! He's all right!" he said to himself
jubilantly.
"Hello, dad," cried Barry, as his father entered the room.
"Supper's just ready. How do you feel, eh?"
"Better, my boy--first rate, I mean. I'm properly hungry. You're
rested, I can see."
"I'm all right, dad! I'm all right!" cried Barry, in his old
cheery way. "Dad, I want to apologise to you. I wasn't myself to-
day, but now I'm all right again. Dad, I've joined up. I'm a
soldier now," he said with a smile on his face, but with anxious eyes
turned on his father.
"Joined up!" echoed his father. "Barry, you have enlisted! Thank
God, my boy. I feared--I thought-- No, damned if I did!" he added,
with such an unusual burst of passion that Barry could only gaze at
him with astonishment.
"Forgive me, my boy," he said, coming forward with outstretched
hand. "For a moment I confess I thought--" Again he paused,
apparently unable to continue.
"You thought, dad," cried Barry, "and--forgive me, dad--I thought
too. I ought to have known you better."
"And I, you, my son."
They shook hands with each other in an ecstasy of jubilation.
"My God, I'm glad that's through," said the older man. "We were
both fools, Barry, but thank God that horror is past. Now tell me
all about everything--your trip, your plans. Let's have a good talk
as we always do."
"Come on then, dad," cried Barry. "Let's have an eat first. By
Jove, I feel a thousand years younger. I go to the M. O. to-morrow
for an examination."
"He is quite unusually severe in his interpretation of the
regulations, I understand," said his father. "He is turning men down
right and left. He knows, of course, that there are plenty to choose
from. But there is no fear of your fitness, Barry."
"Not much," said Barry, with a gay laugh.
Never had they spent a happier evening together. True, the spectre
of war would thrust itself upon them, but they faced it as men-- with
a full appreciation of its solemn reality, but without fear, and with
a quiet determination to make whatever sacrifice might be demanded of
them. The perfect understanding that had always marked their
intercourse with each other was restored. The intolerable burden of
mutual uncertainty in regard to each other's attitude toward the war
was lifted. All shadows that lay between them were gone. Nothing
else really mattered.
The day following, Barry received a rude shock. The M. O., after
an examination, to his amazement and dismay, pronounced him
physically unfit for service.
"And why, pray?" cried his father indignantly, when Barry announced
the astounding report. "Is the man a fool? I understood that he was
strict. But you! unfit! It is preposterous. Unfit! how?"
"Heart murmur," said Barry. "Sets it down to asthma. You remember
I told you I had a rotten attack after my experience last week in the
river. He suggested that I apply for a position in an ambulance
corps, and he is giving me a letter to Colonel Sidleigh at Edmonton.
I am going to-morrow to Edmonton to see Sidleigh, and besides I have
some church business to attend to. I must call upon my
superintendent. You remember I made an application to him for another
mission field."
He found Colonel Sidleigh courteously willing to accept his
application, the answer to which, he was informed, he might expect in
a fortnight; and so went with a comparatively light heart to his
interview with his superintendent.
The interview, however, turned out not entirely as he had expected.
He went with an idea of surrendering his appointment. His
superintendent made him an offer of another and greater.
"So they turned you down," said the superintendent. "Well, I
consider it most providential. You have applied for a position on
the ambulance corps. As fine as is that service, and as splendid as
are its possibilities, I offer you something much finer, and I will
even say much more important to our army and to our cause. We are in
need of men for the Chaplain Service, and for this service we demand
the picked men of our church. The appointments that have been made
already are some of them most unsuitable, some, I regret to say,
scandalous. Let me tell you, sir, of an experience in Winnipeg only
last week. It was, my fortune to fall in with the commanding officer
of a Saskatchewan unit. I found him in a rage against the church and
all its officials. His chaplain had become so hilarious at the mess
that he was quite unable to carry on."
"Hilarious?" inquired Barry.
"Hilarious, sir. Yes, plain drunk. Think of it. Think of the
crime! the shame of it! A man charged with the responsibility of the
souls of these men going to war--possibly to their death-- drunk, in
their presence! A man standing for God and the great eternal
verities, incapacitated before them! I took the matter up with
Ottawa, and I have this satisfaction at least, that I believe that no
such appointment will ever be made again. That chaplain, I may say
too, has been dismissed. I have here, sir, a mission field suitable
to your ability and experience. I shall not offer it to you. I am
offering you the position of chaplain in one of our Alberta
battalions."
Barry stood before him, dumb with dismay.
"Of course, I want to go to the war," he said at length, "but I am
sure, sir, I am not the man for the position you offer me."
"Sir," said the superintendent, "I have taken the liberty of
sending in your name. Time was an element. Appointments were being
rapidly made, and I was extremely anxious that you should go with this
battalion. I confess to a selfish interest. My own boy, Duncan, has
enlisted in that unit, and many of our finest young men with him. I
assumed the responsibility of asking for your appointment. I must
urge you solemnly to consider the matter before you decline."
Eloquently Barry pleaded his unfitness, instancing his failure as a
preacher in his last field.
"I am not a preacher," he protested. "I am not a 'mixer.' They
all say so. I shall be impossible as a chaplain."
"Young man," said the superintendent, a note of sternness in his
voice, "you know not what transformations in character this war will
work. Would I were twenty years younger," he added passionately,
"twenty years sounder. Think of the opportunity to stand for God
among your men, to point them the way of duty, and fit them for it, to
bring them comfort, when they need comfort sorely, to bring them
peace, when they most need peace."
Barry came away from the interview more disturbed than he had ever
been in his life. After he had returned to his hotel, a message from
his superintendent recalled him.
"I have a bit of work to do," he said, "in which I need your help.
I wish you to join me in a visitation of some of the military camps
in this district. We start this evening."
There was nothing for it but to obey his superintendent's orders.
The two weeks' experience with his chief gave Barry a new view and a
new estimate of the chaplain's work. As he came into closer touch
with camp life and its conditions, he began to see how great was the
soldier's need of such moral and spiritual support as a chaplain might
be able to render. He was exposed to subtle and powerful temptations.
He was deprived of the wonted restraints imposed by convention, by
environment, by family ties. The reactions from the exhaustion of
physical training, from the monotonous routine of military discipline,
from loneliness and homesickness were such as to call for that warm,
sympathetic, brotherly aid, and for the uplifting spiritual
inspiration that it is a chaplain's privilege to offer. But in
proportion as the service took on a nobler and loftier aspect, was
Barry conscious to a corresponding degree of his own unfitness for the
work.
When he returned to the city, he found no definite information
awaiting him in regard to a place in the ambulance corps. He
returned home in an unhappy and uncertain frame of mind.
But under the drive of war, events were moving rapidly in Barry's
life. He arrived late in the afternoon, and proceeding to the
military H.Q., he found neither his father nor Captain Neil Fraser in
the office.
"Gone out for the afternoon, sir," was the word from the orderly in
charge.
Wandering about the village, he saw in a field at its outskirts, a
squad of recruits doing military evolutions and physical drill. As
he drew near he was arrested by the short, snappy tones of the N. C.
O. in charge.
"That chap knows his job," he said to himself, "and looks like his
job, too," he added, as his eyes rested upon the neat, upright,
soldier-like figure.
Captain Neil he found observing the drill from a distance.
"What do you think of that?" he called out to Barry, as the latter
came within hailing distance. "What do you think of my sergeant?"
"Fine," replied Barry. "Where did you get him?"
"What? Look at him!"
"I am. Pretty natty sergeant he makes, too."
"Let's go out there, and I'll introduce him."
As they crossed the parade ground, the sergeant dropped his
military tone and proceeded to explain in his ordinary voice some
details in connection with the drill. Barry, catching the sound of
his voice, stopped short.
"You don't mean it, Captain Neil! Not dad, is it?"
"Nobody else," said Captain Neil. "Wait a minute. Wait and let's
watch him at his work."
For some time they stood observing the work of the new sergeant.
Barry was filled with amazement and delight.
"What do you think of him?" inquired Captain Neil.
But Barry made no reply.
"My company sergeant major got drunk," continued Captain Neil. "I
had no one to take the drill. I asked your father to take it. He
nearly swept us off our feet. In consequence, there he stands, my
company sergeant major, and let me tell you, he will be the
regimental sergeant major before many weeks have passed, or I'm a
German."
"But his age," inquired Barry, still in a maze of astonishment.
"Oh, that's all right. You don't want them too young. I assured
the authorities that he was of proper military age, telling them, at
the same time, that I must have him. He's a wonder, and the men just
adore him."
"I don't wonder at that," said Barry.
Together they moved over to the squad. The sergeant, observing his
officer, called his men smartly to attention, and greeted the captain
with a very snappy salute.
"Sergeant major, let me introduce you to my friend, Mr. Barry
Dunbar," said Captain Neil with a grin.
"I say, dad," said Barry, still unable to associate his father with
this N. C. O. in uniform who stood before him. "I say, dad, where
did you get all that military stuff?"
"I'm very rusty, my boy, very rusty! I hope to brush up, though.
The men are improving, I think, sir."
"I'm sure of it," said Captain Neil. "How is that wild man from
Athabasca doing?"
"He is finding it hard work, sir, I'm afraid. He finds it
difficult to connect up this drill business with the business of war.
He wants to go right off and kill Germans. But he is making an
effort to put up with me."
"And you, with him, eh, sergeant major? But turn them loose. They
have done enough for to-day, and I know your son wants to take you
off with him, and get you to explain how you go into the army."
The explanation came as they were walking home together.
"You see, boy, I felt keenly your disappointment in being rejected
from the fighting forces of the country. I felt too that our family
ought to be represented in the fighting line, so when Captain Fraser
found himself in need of a drill sergeant, I could hardly refuse. I
would have liked to have consulted you, my boy, but--"
"Not at all, dad; you did perfectly right. It was just fine of
you. I'm as proud as Punch. I only wish I could go with you. I'd
like to be in your squad. But never mind, I've two jobs open to me
now, and I sorely need your advice."
Together they talked over the superintendent's offer of the
position of chaplain.
"I can't see myself a chaplain, dad. The position calls for an
older man, a man of wider experience. Many of these men would be
almost twice my age. Now the superintendent himself would be the man
for the job. You ought to see him at his work with the soldiers. I
really can't think I'm fit."
In this opinion his father rather concurred.
"An older man would be better, Barry--a man of more experience
would be of more service, and, yet I don't know. One thing I am sure
of, if you accept the position, I believe you will fill it worthily.
After all, in every department, this war is a young man's job."
"Of course," said Barry. "If I went as chaplain, it would be in
your unit, dad, and that would be altogether glorious."
"I do hope so. But we must not allow that, however, to influence
our decision," replied his father.
"I know, I know!" hurriedly agreed Barry. "I trust I would not be
unduly influenced by personal considerations."
This hope, however, was rudely dashed by an unexpected call for a
draft of recruits from Captain Neil's company that came through from
Colonel Kavanagh to replace a draft suddenly dispatched to make up to
strength another western regiment. Attached to the call there was a
specific request, which amounted to a demand for the sergeant major,
for whose special qualifications as physical and military instructor
there was apparently serious need in Colonel Kavanagh's regiment.
With great reluctance, and with the expenditure of considerable
profanity, Captain Neil Fraser dispatched his draft and agreed to the
surrender of his sergeant major.
The change came as a shock to both Barry and his father. For some
days they had indulged the hope that they would both be attached to
the same military unit, and unconsciously this had been weighing with
Barry in his consideration of his probable appointment as chaplain.
The disappointment of their hope was the more bitter when it was
announced that Colonel Kavanagh's battalion was warned for immediate
service overseas, and the further announcement that in all probability
the new battalion, to which the Wapiti company would be attached,
might not be dispatched until some time in the spring.
"But you may catch us up in England, Barry," said his father, when
Barry was deploring their ill luck. "No one knows what our movements
will be. I do wish, however, that your position were definitely
settled."
The decision in this matter came quickly, and was, without his will
or desire, materially hastened by Barry himself.
Colonel Kavanagh's battalion being under orders to depart within
ten days, a final Church Parade was ordered, at which only soldiers
and their kin were permitted to be present. The preacher for the day
falling ill from an overweight of war work, and Barry being in the
city with nothing to do, the duty of preaching at this Parade Service
was suddenly thrust upon him.
To his own amazement and to that of his father, Barry accepted
without any fear or hesitation this duty which in other circumstances
would have overwhelmed him with dismay. But to Barry the occasion
was of such surpassing magnitude and importance that all personal
considerations were obliterated.
The war, with its horrors, its losses, its overwhelming sacrifice,
its vast and eternal issues, was the single fact that filled his
mind. It was this that delivered him from that nervous self-
consciousness, the preacher's curse, that paralyses the mental
activities, chills the passions, and cloggs the imagination, so that
his sermon becomes a lifeless repetition of words, previously
prepared, correct, even beautiful, it may be in form, logical in
argument, sound in philosophy, but dead, dull and impotent, bereft of
the fire that kindles the powers of the soul, the emotion that urges
to action, the imagination that lures to high endeavour.
"I beseech you therefore, brethren, by the mercies of God, that ye
present your bodies a living sacrifice, holy, acceptable unto God,
which is your reasonable service."
The voice, clear, vibrant, melodious, arrested with its first word
the eyes and hearts of his hearers, and so held them to the end. With
the earnest voice there was the fascination of a face alight with a
noble beauty, eyes glowing as with lambent flame.
A second time he read the appealing words, then paused and allowed
his eyes to wander quietly over the congregation. They represented
to him in that hour the manhood and womanhood of his country.
Sincerely, with no attempt at rhetoric and with no employment of any
of its tricks, he began his sermon.
"This war," he said, "is a conflict of ideals eternally opposed.
Our ambitious and ruthless enemy has made the issue and has
determined the method of settlement. It is a war of souls, but the
method of settlement is not that of reason but that of force--a force
that finds expression through your bodies. Therefore the appeal of
the Apostle Paul, this old-world hero, to the men of his time reaches
down to us in this day, and at this crisis of the world's history.
Offer your bodies--these living bodies--these sacred bodies--offer
them in sacrifice to God."
There was little discussion of the causes of the war. What need?
They knew that this war was neither of their desiring nor of their
making. There was no attempt to incite hatred or revenge. There was
little reference to the horrors of war, to its griefs, its dreadful
agonies, its irreparable losses.
From the first word he lifted his audience to the high plane of
sacrament and sacrifice. They were called upon to offer upon the
altar of the world's freedom all that they held dear in life--yea,
life itself! It was the ancient sacrifice that the noblest of the
race had always been called upon to make. In giving themselves to
this cause they were giving themselves to their country. They were
offering themselves to God. In simple diction, and in clear flowing
speech, the sermon proceeded without pause or stumbling to the end.
The preacher closed with an appeal to the soldiers present to make
this sacrifice of theirs at once worthy and complete. These bodies of
theirs were sacred and were devoted to this cause. It was their duty
to keep them clean and fit.
For a few brief moments, he turned to the others present at the
service--the fathers, mothers, wives and sweethearts of the soldiers,
and reminded them in tones thrilling with tenderness and sympathy that
though not privileged to share in the soldiers' service in the front
lines, none the less might they share in this sacrifice, by patient
endurance of the separation and loss, by a cheerful submission to
trial, and by continual remembrance in prayer to Almighty God of the
sacred cause and its defenders they might help to bring this cause to
victory.
In the brief prayer that followed the sermon, in words tender,
simple, heart-moving, he led the people in solemn dedication of
themselves, soul and body, to their country, to their cause, to their
God.
The effect of the sermon and prayer was overpowering. There were
no tears, but men walked out with heads more erect, because of the
exaltation of spirit which was theirs. And women, fearful of the
coming hour of parting, felt their hearts grow strong within them
with the thought that they were voluntarily sending their men away.
Upon the whole congregation lay a new and solemn sense of duty, a new
and uplifting sense of privilege in making the sacrifice of all that
they counted precious for this holy cause.
It was the sermon that brought the decision in the matter of
Barry's appointment.
"What do you think of that, Colonel Kavanagh?" asked Captain Neil
Fraser, who came in for the service.
"A very fine sermon! A very notable sermon!" said the colonel.
"Who is he?"
"He is my own minister," said Captain Neil, "and he gave me, to-
day, the surprise of my life. I didn't know it was in him. I
understand there is a chance of his being our chaplain. He is
Sergeant Dunbar's son."
"I wish to Heaven we could take him with us! What about it,
Fraser? We've got the father, why not the son, too? They'd both
like it."
"I say, Colonel, for Heaven's sake, have a heart. I hated to
surrender my company sergeant major. I don't think I ought to be
asked to surrender our chaplain."
"All right, Fraser, so be it. But you have got a wonderful
chaplain in that boy. What a face! What a voice! And that's the
kind of a spirit we want in our men."
That very afternoon, Captain Neil went straight away to Colonel
Leighton, the officer commanding the new regiment to which Captain
Neil's company belonged. To the colonel he gave an enthusiastic
report of the sermon, with Colonel Kavanagh's judgment thereon.
"I would suggest, sir, that you wire Ottawa on the matter," he
urged. "If Colonel Kavanagh thought he had a chance, he would not
hesitate. We really ought to get this fixed. I assure you he's a
find."
"Go to it, then, Fraser. I'm rather interested to see your earnest
desire for a chaplain. The Lord knows you need one! Go up to
Headquarters and use my name. Say what you like."
Thus it came that the following day Barry was informed by wire of
his appointment as chaplain of the new regiment of Alberta rangers.
"It's at least a relief to have the matter settled," said his
father, to whom Barry brought his wire. "Barry, I'm glad of the
opportunity to tell you that since yesterday, my mind has undergone
considerable change. I am not sure but that you have found your
place and your work in the war."
"No, dad," answered Barry, "I wasn't responsible for that sermon
yesterday. The war was very near and very real to me. Those boys
were looking up at me, and you were there, dad. You drew that sermon
stuff out of me."
"If once, why not again? At any rate, it greatly rejoiced me to
know that it was there in you. I don't say I was proud of you, my
boy. I was proud of you, but that is not the word that I should like
to use. I was profoundly grateful that I was privileged to hear a
sermon like that from a son of mine. Now, Barry," continued his
father, "this is our last day together for some months, perhaps
forever," he added in a low tone.
"Don't, daddy, don't," cried Barry, "I can't bear to think of that
to-day."
"All right, Barry, but why not? It is really far better that we
should face all the possibilities. But now that we have this day--
and what a perfect day it is--for our last day together, what shall
we do with it?"
"I know, dad--I think you would wish that we take our ride into the
foothills to-day."
"It was in my mind, my boy. I hesitated to suggest it. So let us
go."
It was one of those rare November days that only Alberta knows,
mellow with the warm sun, and yet with a nip in it that suggested the
coming frost, without a ripple of the wind that almost constantly
sweeps the Alberta ranges. In the blue sky hung motionless, like
white ships at sea, bits of cloud. The long grass, brown, yellow and
green in a hundred shades, lay like a carpet over the rolling hills
and wide spreading valleys, reaching up on every side to the horizon,
except toward the west, where it faded into the blue of the foothills
at the bases of the mighty Rockies.
Up the long trail, resilient to their horses' feet, they cantered
where the going was good, or picked their way with slow and careful
tread where the rocky ridges jutted through the black soil.
They made no effort to repulse the thought that this was their last
day together, nor did they seek to banish the fact of the war. With
calm courage and hope they faced the facts of their environment,
seeking to aid each other in readjusting their lives to those facts.
They were resolutely cheerful. The day was not to be spoiled with
tears and lamentations. Already each in his own place and time had
made his sacrifice of a comradeship that was far dearer than life.
The agony of that hour, each had borne in silence and alone. No
shadow should fall across this sunny day.
By the side of the grave, in its little palisaded enclosure, they
lingered, the father recalling the days of his earlier manhood, which
had been brightened by a love whose fragrance he had cherished and
shared with his son through their years together, Barry listening with
reverent attention and tender sympathy.
"I had always planned that I too should be laid here, Barry," said
his father, as they prepared to take their departure, "but do you
know, boy, this war has made many changes in me and this is one. It
seems to me a very little thing where my body lies, if it be offered,
as you were saying so beautifully yesterday, in sacrifice to our
cause."
Barry could only nod his head in reply. He was deeply moved.
"You are young, Barry," said his father, noting his emotion, "and
life is very dear to you, my boy."
"No, dad, no! Not life," said Barry brokenly. "Not life, only
you, dad. I just want you, and, oh dad!" continued the boy, losing
hold of himself and making no effort to check or hide the tears that
ran down his face, "if one of us is to go in this war,--as is likely
enough,--I only want that the other should be there at the time. It
would be--terribly--lonely--dad--to go out myself-- without you. Or
to have you go out--alone.--We have always been together--and you have
been--so very good to me, dad. I can't help this, dad,--I try--but I
am not strong enough--I'm not holding back from the sacrifice, dad,"
hurrying his words,--"No, no, not that, but perhaps you understand."
For answer, his father put both his arms around his son, drew his
head down to his breast, as if he had been a child.
"There, there, laddie," he said, patting him on the shoulder, "I
know, I know! Oh God, how I know. We have lived together very
closely, without a shadow ever between us, and my prayer, since this
war began, has been that in death, if it had to be, we might be
together, and, Barry, somehow I believe God will give us that."
"Good old dad, good old boy! What a brick you are! I couldn't
help that, dad. Forgive me for being a baby, and spoiling the day--"
"Forgive you, boy," still with his arms around his son, "Barry, I
love you for it. You've never brought me one sorrow nor will you.
To-day and every day I thank God for you, my son."
They rode back through the evening toward the camp. By the time
they arrived there, the sun had sunk behind the mountains, and the
quiet stars were riding serenely above the broken, floating clouds,
and in their hearts was peace.
"Gentlemen, may I introduce Captain Dunbar, your sky-pilot, padre,
chaplain, anything you like? They say he's a devil of a good
preacher. The Lord knows you need one."
So Barry's commanding officer introduced him to the mess.
He bowed in different directions to the group of officers who, in
the ante-room of the mess, were having a pre-prandial cocktail. Barry
found a place near the foot of the table and for a few minutes sat
silent, getting his bearings.
Some of the officers were known to him. He had met the commanding
officer, Colonel Leighton, a typical, burly Englishman, the owner of
an Alberta horse ranch, who, well to do to begin with, had made money
during his five years in the country. He had the reputation of being
a sporting man, of easy morality, fond of his glass and of good
living. He owed his present position, partly to political influence,
and partly to his previous military experience in the South African
war. His popularity with his officers was due largely to his easy
discipline, and to the absence of that rigidity of manner which is
supposed to go with high military command, and which civilians are
wont to find so irksome.
Barry had also met Major Bustead, the Senior Major of the
Battalion, and President of the mess, an eastern Canadian, with no
military experience whatever, but with abounding energy and ambition;
the close friend and boon companion of Colonel Leighton, he naturally
had become his second in command. Barry was especially delighted to
observe Major Bayne, whom he had not seen since his first meeting
with him some months ago on the Red Pine Trail. Captain Neil Fraser
and Lieutenant Stewart Duff were the only officers about the table
whom he recognised, except that, among the junior lieutenants, he
caught the face of young Duncan Cameron, the oldest son of his
superintendent, and a fine, clean-looking young fellow he appeared.
Altogether Barry was strongly attracted by the clean, strong faces
about him. He would surely soon find good friends among them, and he
only hoped he might be able to be of some service to them.
The young fellow on his right introduced himself as Captain
Hopeton. He was a young English public school boy, who, though a
failure as a rancher, had proved an immense success in the social
circles of the city. Because of this, and also of his family
connections "at home," he had been appointed to a Civil Service
position. A rather bored manner and a supercilious air spoiled what
would otherwise have been a handsome and attractive face.
After a single remark about the "beastly bore" of military duty,
Hopeton ignored Barry, giving such attention as he had to spare from
his dinner to a man across the table, with whom, apparently, he had
shared some rather exciting social experiences in the city.
For the first half hour of the meal, the conversation was of the
most trivial nature, and was to Barry supremely uninteresting. "Shop
talk" was strictly taboo, and also all reference to the war. The thin
stream of conversation that trickled from lip to lip ran the gamut of
sport, spiced somewhat highly with society scandal which, even in that
little city, appeared to flourish.
To Barry it was as if he were in a strange land and among people of
a strange tongue. Of sport, as understood by these young chaps, he
knew little, and of scandal he was entirely innocent; so much so that
many of the references that excited the most merriment were to him
utterly obscure. After some attempts to introduce topics of
conversation which he thought might be of mutual interest, but which
had fallen quite flat, Barry gave up, and sat silent with a desolating
sense of loneliness growing upon his spirit.
"After the port," when smoking was permitted, he was offered a
cigarette by Hopeton, and surprised that young man mightily by saying
that he never smoked. This surprise, it is to be feared, deepened
into disgust when, a few moments later, he declined a drink from
Hopeton's whisky bottle, which a servant brought him.
Liquors were not provided at the mess, but officers were permitted
to order what they desired.
As the bottles circulated, tongues were loosened. There was
nothing foul in the talk, but more and more profanity, with frequent
apology to the chaplain, began to decorate the conversation.
Conscious of a deepening disgust with his environment, and of an
overwhelming sense of isolation, Barry cast vainly about for a means
of escape. Of military etiquette he was ignorant; hence he could only
wait in deepening disgust for the O. C. to give the signal to rise.
How long he could have endured is doubtful, but release came in a
startling, and, to most of the members of the mess, a truly
horrifying manner.
In one of those strange silences that fall upon even the noisiest
of companies, Colonel Leighton, under the influence of a somewhat
liberal indulgence in his whisky bottle, began the relation of a tale
of very doubtful flavour. In the midst of the laughter that followed
the tale, Barry rose to his feet, his face white and his eyes aflame,
and in a voice vibrating with passion, said:
"May I be excused, sir?"
"Why, certainly," said the colonel pleasantly, adding after a
moment's hesitation, "is there anything wrong, Dunbar? Are you ill?"
"No, sir." Barry's voice had the resonant quality of a cello
string. "I mean, yes, sir," he corrected. "I am ill. The
atmosphere surrounding such a tale is nauseating to me."
In the horrified silence that followed his remark, he walked out
from the room. Upon his ears, as he stood in the ante-room,
trembling with the violence of his passion, a burst of laughter fell.
A sudden wrath like a hot flame swept his body. He wheeled in his
tracks, tore open the door, and with head high and face set, strode to
his place at the table and sat down.
Astonishment beyond all words held the company in tense stillness.
From Barry's face they looked toward the colonel, who, too dumfounded
for speech or action, sat gazing at his chaplain. Then from the end
of the table a few places down from Barry, a voice was heard.
"Feel better, Dunbar?" The cool, clear voice cut through the tense
silence like the zip of a sword.
"I do, thank you, sir," looking him straight in the eye.
"The fresh air, doubtless," continued the cool voice. "I always
find myself that even a whiff of fresh air is a very effective
antidote for threatening vertigo. I remember once--" continued the
speaker, dropping into a conversational tone, and leaning across the
table slightly toward Barry, "I was in the room with a company of
men--" And the speaker entered upon a long and none too interesting
relation of an experience of his, the point of which no one grasped,
but the effect of which every one welcomed with the profoundest
relief. He was the regimental medical officer, a tall, slight man,
with a keen eye, a pleasant face crowned by a topknot of flaming hair,
and with a little dab of hair of like colour upon his upper lip, which
he fondly cherished, as an important item in his military equipment.
"Say, the old doc is a lifesaver, sure enough," said a young
subaltern, answering to the name of "Sally," colloquial for Salford,
as he stood amid a circle of officers gathered in the smoking room a
few minutes later. "A lifesaver," repeated Sally, with emphasis. "He
can have me for his laboratory collection after I'm through."
"He is one sure singing bird," said another sub, a stout, overgrown
boy by the name of Booth. "The nerve of him," added Booth in
admiration.
"Nerve!" echoed a young captain, "but what about the pilot's
nerve?"
"Sui generis, Train, I should say," drawled Hopeton.
"Suey, who did you say?" inquired Sally. "What's her second name?
But let me tell you I could have fallen on his neck and burst into
tears of gratitude. For me," continued Sally, glancing about the
room, "I don't hold with that dirt stuff at mess. It isn't
necessary."
"Beastly bad form," said Hopeton, "but, good Lord! Your Commanding
Officer, Sally! There's such a thing as discipline, you know."
"What extraordinary thing is it that Sally knows?" inquired Major
Bustead, who lounged up to the group.
"We were discussing the padre's break, Major, which for my part,"
drawled Hopeton, "I consider rotten discipline."
"Discipline!" snorted the major. "By Gad, it was a piece of the
most damnable cheek I have ever heard at a mess table. He ought to
be sent to Coventry. I only hope the O. C. will get him exchanged."
The major made no effort to subdue his voice, which was plainly
audible throughout the room.
"Hush, for God's sake," warned Captain Train, as Barry entered the
door. "Here he is."
But Barry had caught the major's words. For a moment he stood
irresolute; then walked quietly toward the group.
"I couldn't help hearing you, Major Bustead," he said, in a voice
pleasant and under perfect control. "I gather you were referring to
me."
"I was, sir," said the major defiantly.
"And why should I be sent to Coventry, or exchanged, may I ask?"
Barry's voice was that of an interested outsider.
"Because," stuttered the Major, "I consider, sir, that--that--you
have been guilty of a piece of damnable impertinence toward your
Commanding Officer. I never heard anything like it in my life.
Infernal cheek, I call it, sir."
While the major was speaking, Barry stood listening with an air of
respectful attention.
"I wonder!" he said, after a moment's thought. "If I thought I had
been impertinent, I should at once apologise. But, sir, do you think
it is part of my duty to allow any man, even my Commanding Officer,
to--pardon the disgusting metaphor, it is not so disgusting as the
action complained of--to spit in my soup, and take it without protest?
Do you, sir?"
"I--you--" The major grew very red in the face. "You need to
learn your place in this battalion, sir."
"I do," said Barry, still preserving his quiet voice and manner.
"I want to learn--I am really anxious to learn it. Do you mind
answering my question?" His tone was that of a man who is earnestly
but quite respectfully seeking information from a superior officer.
"Your question, sir?" stuttered the major, "your--your--question.
Damn your question, and yourself too."
The major turned abruptly away. Barry heard him quite unmoved,
stood looking after him in silence a moment or two, then, shaking his
head, with a puzzled expression on his face, moved slowly away from
the group.
"Oh, my aunt Caroline," breathed Sally into his friend Hopeton's
ear, resting heavily meanwhile against his shoulder. "What a score!
What a score!"
"A bull, begad! a clean bull!" murmured Hopeton, supporting his
friend out of the room as he added, "A little fresh air, as a
preventative of vertigo, as the old doc says, eh, Sally."
"Good Lord, is he just a plain ass, or what?" inquired young Booth,
his eye following Barry down the room.
"Ass! A mule, I should say. And one with a good lot of kick in
him," replied Captain Train. "I don't know that I care for that kind
of an animal, though."
Before many hours had passed, the whole battalion had received with
undiluted joy an account of the incident, for though the Commanding
Officer was popular with his men, to have him called down at his own
mess by one of his own officers was an event too thrilling to give
anything but unalloyed delight to those who had to suffer in silence
similar indignities at the hands of their officers.
A notable exception in the battalion, however, was Sergeant Major
McFetteridge, who, because of his military experience, and of his
reputation as a disciplinarian, had been recently transferred to the
battalion. To the sergeant major this act of Barry's was but another
and more flagrant example of his fondness for "buttin' in," and the
sergeant major let it be known that he strongly condemned the chaplain
for what he declared was an unheard of breach of military discipline.
Of course there were others who openly approved, and who admired
the chaplain's "nerve in standing up to the old man." In their
opinion he was entirely justified in what he had said. The O. C. had
insulted him, and every officer at the mess, by his off-colour story,
but on the whole the general result of the incident was that Barry's
life became more and more one of isolation from both officers and men.
For this reason and because of a haunting sense of failure the months
of training preceding the battalion's departure for England were for
Barry one long and almost uninterrupted misery. It seemed impossible
to establish any point of contact with either the officers or the men.
In their athletics, in their social gatherings, in their reading, he
was quietly ignored and made to feel that he was in no way necessary.
An impalpable but very real barrier prevented his near approach to
those whom he was so eager to serve.
This unexpressed opposition was quickened into active hostility by
the chaplain's uncompromising attitude on the liquor question. By
the army regulations, the battalion canteen was dry, but in spite of
this many, both of the officers and the men, freely indulged in the
use of intoxicating drink. The effect upon discipline was, of course,
deplorable, and in his public addresses as well as private
conversation, Barry constantly denounced these demoralising habits,
winning thereby the violent dislike of those especially affected, and
the latent hostility of the majority of the men who agreed with the
sergeant major in resenting the chaplain's "buttin' in."
It was, therefore, with unspeakable joy that Barry learned that the
battalion was warned for overseas service. Any change in his lot
would be an improvement, for he was convinced that he had reached the
limit of wretchedness in the exercise of his duty as chaplain of the
battalion.
In this conviction, however, he was mistaken. On shipboard, he
discovered that there were still depths of misery which he was called
upon to plumb. Assigned to a miserable stateroom in an uncomfortable
part of the ship, he suffered horribly from seasickness, and for the
first half of the voyage lay foodless and spiritless in his bunk,
indifferent to his environment or to his fate. His sole friend was
his batman, Harry Hobbs, but, of course, he could not confide to Harry
the misery of his body, or the deeper misery of his soul.
It was Harry, however, that brought relief, for it was he that
called the M. O. to his officer's bedside. The M. O. was shocked to
find the chaplain in a state of extreme physical weakness, and mental
depression. At once, he gave orders that Barry should be removed to
his own stateroom, which was large and airy and open to the sea
breezes. The effect was immediately apparent, for the change of room,
and more especially the touch of human sympathy, did much to restore
Barry to his normal health and spirits. A friendship sprang up
between the M. O. and the chaplain. With this friendship a new
interest came into Barry's life, and with surprising rapidity he
regained both his physical and mental tone.
The doctor took him resolutely in hand, pressed him to take his
part in the daily physical drill, induced him to share the daily
programme of sports, and, best of all, discovering a violin on board,
insisted on his taking a place on the musical programme rendered
nightly in the salon. As might be expected, his violin won him
friends among all of the music lovers on board ship, and life for
Barry began once more to be bearable.
Returning strength, however, recalled him to the performance of his
duties as chaplain, and straightway in the exercise of what he
considered his duty, he came into conflict with no less a personage
than the sergeant major himself. The trouble arose over his batman,
Harry Hobbs.
Harry was a man who, in his youthful days, had been a diligent
patron of the London music halls, and in consequence had become
himself an amateur entertainer of very considerable ability. His
sailor's hornpipes, Irish jigs, his old English North-country ballads
and his coster songs were an unending joy to his comrades. Their
gratitude and admiration took forms that proved poor Harry's undoing,
and besides some of them took an unholy joy in sending the chaplain's
batman to his officer incapable of service.
Barry's indignation and grief were beyond words. He dealt
faithfully with the erring Hobbs, as his minister, as his officer, as
chaplain, but the downward drag of his environment proved too great
for his batman's powers of resistance. Once and again Barry sought
the aid of the sergeant major to rescue Harry from his downward
course, but the old sergeant major was unimpressed with the account of
Harry's lapses.
"Is your batman unfit for duty, sir?" he inquired.
"Yes, he is, often," said Barry indignantly.
"Did you report him, sir?" inquired the sergeant major.
"No, I did not."
"Then, sir, I am afraid that until you do your duty I can do
nothing," answered the sergeant major, with suave respect.
"If you did your duty," Barry was moved to say, "then Hobbs would
not need to be reported. The regulations governing that canteen
should prevent these frequent examples of drunkenness, which are a
disgrace to the battalion."
"Do I understand, sir," inquired the sergeant major, with quiet
respect, "that you are accusing me of a failure in duty?"
"I am saying that if the regulations were observed my batman and
others would not be so frequently drunk, and the enforcing of these
regulations, I understand, is a part of your duty."
"Then, sir," replied the sergeant major, "perhaps I had better
report myself to the Commanding Officer."
"You can please yourself," said Barry, shortly, as he turned away.
"Very good, sir," replied the sergeant major. "I shall report
myself at once."
The day following, the chaplain received an order to appear before
the O. C. in the orderly room.
"Captain Dunbar, I understand that you are making a charge against
Sergeant Major McFetteridge," was Colonel Leighton's greeting.
"I am making no charge against any one, sir," replied Barry
quietly.
"What do you say to that, Sergeant Major McFetteridge?"
In reply, the sergeant major gave a full and fair statement of the
passage between the chaplain and himself the day before.
"Is this correct, Captain Dunbar?" asked the O. C.
"Substantially correct, sir, except that the sergeant major is here
on his own suggestion, and on no order of mine."
"Then I understand that you withdraw your charge against the
sergeant major."
"I withdraw nothing, sir. I had no intention of laying a charge,
and I have laid no charge against the sergeant major; but at the same
time I have no hesitation in saying that the regulations governing the
canteen are not observed, and, as I understand that the responsibility
for enforcing these regulations is in the sergeant major's hands, in
that sense I consider that he has failed in his duty."
But the sergeant major was too old a soldier to be caught napping.
He had his witnesses ready at hand to testify that the canteen was
conducted according to regulations, and that if the chaplain's batman
or any others took more liquor than they should, neither the corporal
in charge of the canteen nor the sergeant major was to be blamed.
"All I can say, sir," replied Barry, "is that soldiers are
frequently drunk on this ship, and I myself have seen them when the
worse for liquor going into the canteen."
"And did you report these men to their officers or to me, Captain
Dunbar, or did you report the corporal in charge of the canteen?"
"No, sir, I did not."
"Then sir, do you know that you have been guilty of serious neglect
of duty?" said the colonel sternly.
"Do I understand, sir, that it is my duty to report to you every
man I see the worse for liquor on this ship?"
"Most certainly," replied the colonel, emphatically. "Every breach
of discipline must be reported."
"I understood, sir, that an officer had a certain amount of
discretion in a matter of this kind."
"Where did you get that notion?" inquired the colonel. "Let me
tell you that you are wrong. Discretionary powers lie solely with
me."
"Then, sir, I am to understand that I must report every man whom I
see the worse for liquor?"
"Certainly, sir,"
"And every officer, as well, sir?"
The colonel hesitated a moment, fumbled with his papers, and then
blurted out:
"Certainly, sir. And let me say, Captain Dunbar, that an officer,
especially an officer in your position, ought to be very careful in
making a charge against a N. C. O., more particularly the sergeant
major of his battalion. Nothing is more calculated to drag down
discipline. The case is dismissed."
"Sir," said Barry, maintaining his place before the table. "May I
ask one question?"
"The case is dismissed, Captain Dunbar. What do you want?" asked
the colonel brusquely.
"I want to be quite clear as to my duty, in the future, sir. Do I
understand that if any man or officer is found under the influence of
liquor, anywhere in this ship, and at any hour of the day or night, he
is to be reported at once to the orderly room, even though that
officer should be, say, even the adjutant or yourself?" Barry said,
gazing up at the colonel with a face in which earnestness and candour
were equally blended.
The colonel gazed back at him with a face in which rage and
perplexity were equally apparent. For some moments, he was
speechless, while the whole orderly room held its breath.
"I mean--that you--you understand--of course," stuttered the
colonel, "that an officer must use common sense. He must be damned
sure of what he says, in other words," said the colonel, rushing his
speech.
"But, sir," continued Barry.
"Oh, go to the devil, sir," roared the colonel. "The case is
dismissed."
Barry saluted and left the room.
"Is the man an infernal and condemned fool, or what is the matter
with him?" exclaimed the colonel, turning to his adjutant in a
helpless appeal, while the orderly room struggled with its grins.
"The devil only knows," said Major Bustead. "He beats me. He is
an interfering and impertinent ass, in my opinion, but what else he
is, I don't know."
It is fair to say that the sergeant major bore the chaplain no
grudge for his part in the affair. The whole battalion, however,
soon became possessed of the tale, adorned and expanded to an
unrecognisable extent, and revelled in ecstasy over the discomfort of
the C. O. The consensus of opinion was that on the whole the sergeant
major had come off with premier honours, and as between the "old man"
and the "Sky Pilot," as Barry was coming to be called, it was about an
even break. As for the Pilot, he remained more than ever a mystery,
and on the whole, the battalion was inclined to leave him alone.
The chaplain, however, had partially, at least, achieved his aim,
in that the regulations governing the canteen were more strictly
enforced, to the vast improvement of discipline generally, and to the
immense advantage of Harry Hobbs in particular.
Soon after this, another event occurred which aided materially in
bringing about this same result, and which also led to a modification
of opinion in the battalion in regard to their chaplain.
To the civilian soldier the punctilio of military etiquette is
frequently not only a bore, but at times takes on the appearance of
wilful insult which no grown man should be expected to tolerate. To
the civilian soldier born and brought up in wide spaces of the far
Northwest this is especially the case.
It is not surprising, therefore, that McCuaig, fresh from his
thirty-five years of life in the Athabasca wilds, should find the
routine of military discipline extremely irksome and the niceties of
military etiquette as from a private to an officer not only foolish
but degrading both to officer and man. Under the patient shepherding
of Barry's father, he had endured much without protest or complaint,
but, with the advent of Sergeant Major McFetteridge, with his rigid
military discipline and his strict insistence upon etiquette, McCuaig
passed into a new atmosphere. To the freeborn and freebred recruit
from the Athabasca plains, the stiff and somewhat exaggerated military
bearing of the sergeant major was at first a source of quiet
amusement, later of perplexity, and finally of annoyance. For
McFetteridge and his minutiae of military discipline McCuaig held only
contempt. To him, the whole business was a piece of silly nonsense
unworthy of serious men.
It was inevitable that the sergeant major should sooner or later
discover this opinion in Private McCuaig, and that he should consider
the holding of this opinion as a tendency toward insubordination. It
was also inevitable that the sergeant major should order a course of
special fatigues calculated to subdue the spirit of the insubordinate
private.
It took McCuaig some days to discover that in these frequent
fatigues and special duties, he was undergoing punishment, but once
made, the discovery wrought in him a cold and silent rage, which
drove him to an undue and quite unwonted devotion to the canteen,
which in turn transformed the reserved, self-controlled man of the
wilds into a demonstrative, disorderly and quarrelsome "rookie"
aching for trouble.
Under these circumstances, an outburst was inevitable. Corporal
Ferry, in charge of the canteen, furnished the occasion.
"No more for you, McCuaig. You've got more aboard now than you can
carry."
To the injury of being denied another beer was added the insult of
suggesting his inability to carry what he had. This to a man of
McCuaig's experience in every bar and camp and roadhouse from
Edmonton to the Arctic circle, was not to be endured.
He leaned over the improvised bar, until his face almost touched
the corporal's.
"What?" he ejaculated, but in the single expletive there darted out
such concentrated fury, that the little corporal sprang back as from
a striking snake.
"You can't have any more beer, McCuaig," said the corporal, from a
safe distance.
"Watch me, sonny!" replied McCuaig.
With a single sweep of his hand, he snatched two bottles from the
ledge behind the corporal's head. Holding one aloft, he knocked the
top off the other, drank its contents slowly and smashed the empty
bottle at the spot where the corporal's head had been; knocked the top
off the second bottle and was proceeding to drink it, in a more or
less leisurely fashion.
"Private Timms! Private Mulligan!" shouted Corporal Ferry,
reappearing from beneath the counter. "Arrest that man!"
"Wait, sonny; give me a chance," cried McCuaig, in a wild, high,
singsong voice. Lifting his bottle to his lips, he continued to
drink slowly, keeping his eye upon the two privates, who were
considering the best method of carrying out their orders.
"There, sonny, fill that up again," cried McCuaig, good-naturedly,
when he had finished his drink, tossing the second bottle at the head
of the corporal, who, being on the alert, again made a successful
disappearance.
"Now, then, boys, come on," said McCuaig, backing toward the wall,
and dropping his hands to his hips. With a curse of disappointment
that he found himself without his usual weapons of defence, McCuaig
raised a shout, sprang into the air, cracked his heels together in a
double rap, and swinging his arms around his head, yelled:
"Come on, my boys! I'm hungry, I am! Meat! Meat! Meat!"
With each "meat," his white teeth came together with a snap like
that of a hungry wolf. Such was the beastly ferocity in his face and
posture that both Private Timms and Private Mulligan, themselves men
of more than average strength, paused and looked at the corporal for
further orders.
"Arrest that man," said the corporal again, preserving at the same
time an attitude that revealed a complete readiness for swift
disappearance. "Private McTavish," he added, calling upon a tall
Highlander who was gazing with admiring eyes upon the raging McCuaig,
"assist Private Timms and Private Mulligan in arresting that man."
"Why don't you come yourself, sonny?" inquired McCuaig. With a
swift sidestep and a swifter swoop of his long arm, he reached for
the corporal, who once more found safety in swift disappearance.
At that instant, the Highlander, seeing his opportunity, flung
himself upon McCuaig, and winding his arms around him, hung to him
grimly, crying out:
"Get hold of his legs! Queeck! Will you?"
When the sergeant major, attracted by the unwonted uproar, appeared
upon the scene, there was a man on every one of McQuaig's limbs, and
another one astride his stomach. "Heavin' like sawlogs shootin' a
rapid," as Private Corbin, a lumberjack from the Eau Claire, was later
heard to remark.
"What is he like now?" inquired the colonel, after listening to the
sergeant major's report of the Homeric combat.
"He is in a compartment in the hold, sir, and raging like one
demented. He very nearly did for Major Bustead, smashing at him with
a scantling that he ripped from the ship's timbers, sir. He still has
the scantling, sir."
"Let him cool off all night," said the Commanding Officer, after
consultation with the adjutant.
Barry, who with difficulty had restrained himself during the
sergeant major's report, slipped from the room, found the M. O., to
whom he detailed the story and dragged him off to visit the raging
McCuaig.
They found a corporal on guard outside.
"I would not open the door, sir. He is really dangerous."
"Oh, rot!" replied the M. O. "Open up the door!"
"Excuse me, sir," said the corporal, "it is not safe. At present,
he is clean crazy. He is off his nut entirely."
The M. O. stood listening at the door. From within came moaning
sounds as from a suffering beast.
"That man is suffering. Open the door!" ordered the M. O.
peremptorily.
The corporal, with great reluctance, unlocked the padlock, shot
back the bolt, and then stood away from the door.
"It is the medical officer, McCuaig," said the doctor, opening the
door slightly.
Bang! Crash! came the scantling upon the door jamb, shattering it
to pieces. The whole guard flung themselves against the door, shoved
it shut, and shot the bolt.
"I warned you, sir," said the panting corporal. "Better leave him
until morning. He's a regular devil!"
"He is no more a devil than you are, corporal," said Barry, in a
loud, clear voice. "He is one of the best men in the battalion. More
than that, he is my friend, and if he spends the night there, I spend
it with him."
So saying, and before any one could stop him, Barry shot back the
bolt, opened the door, and with his torchlight flashing before him,
stepped inside.
"Hello, McCuaig," he called, in a quiet, clear voice, "where are
you? It's Dunbar, you know."
He drew the door shut after him. The corporal was for following
him, but the M. O. interposed.
"Stop out!" he ordered. "Stay where you are! You have done enough
mischief already."
"But, sir, he'll kill him!"
"This is my case," said the M. O. sharply. "Fall back all of you,
out of sight!"
Together they stood listening in awestruck silence, expecting every
moment to hear sounds of conflict, and cries for help, but all they
heard was the cool, even flow of a quiet voice, and after some
minutes had passed, the sound of moans, mingled with a terrible
sobbing.
The M. O., moving toward the corporal and his guard, said in a low
tone:
"Take your men down the passage and keep them there until I call
for you."
"Sir," began the corporal.
"Will you obey my orders?" said the M. O. "I'm in command here!
Go!"
Without further words, the corporal moved his men away.
Half an hour later, the sergeant major, going his rounds, received
a rude shock. In the passage leading to McCuaig's compartment, he
met four men, bearing on a stretcher toward the sick bay a long
silent form.
"Who have you got there, corporal?" he inquired in a tone of kindly
interest.
"McCuaig, sir."
"McCuaig?" roared the sergeant major. "And who--"
"Medical officer's orders."
"Silence there," said a sharp voice in the rear. "Carry on, men."
And past the astonished sergeant major, the procession filed with
the medical officer and the chaplain at its tail end.
After the sergeant major had made his report to the O. C., as was
his duty, the M. O. was sent for. What took place at that interview
was never divulged to the mess, but it was known that whereas the
conversation began in very loud tones by the Officer Commanding, it
ended half an hour later with the M. O. being shown out of the room by
the colonel himself, who was heard to remark:
"A very fine bit of work. Tell him I want to see him when he has a
few minutes, and thank you, doctor, thank you!"
"Who does the old man want to see?" inquired Sally, who, with
Hopeton and Booth, happened to be passing.
"The chaplain," snapped the M. O., going on his way.
"The chaplain? By Jove, he's a queer one, eh?"
The M. O. turned sharply back, and coming very close to Sally, said
in a wrathful voice:
"A queer one? Yes, a queer one! But if some of you damned young
idiots that sniff at him had just half his guts, you'd be twice the
men you are.--Shut up, Hopeton! Listen to me--" and in words of
fiery rage that ran close to tears, he recounted his experience of
the last hour.
"By Jove! Doc, some guts, eh?" said Sally in a low tone, as he
moved away.
A long, weird blast from the fog horn, followed by two short, sharp
toots, recalled Barry from his morning dream.
"Fog," he grumbled, and turned over to re-capture the enchantment
of the Athabasca rapids, and his dancing canoe.
Overhead there sounded the trampling of feet.
"Submarines, doc," he shouted and leaped to the floor broad awake.
"What's the row?" murmured the M. O., who was a heavy sleeper.
For answer, Barry ripped the clothes from the doctor's bed.
"Submarines, doc," he shouted again, and buckling on his Sam Brown,
and seizing his lifebelt, he stood ready to go.
"What! your boots off, doc?"
In the orders of the day before had been an announcement that
officers and men were to sleep fully dressed.
"Oh, the devil!" exclaimed the doctor, hunting through his
bedclothes in desperation. "I can't sleep in my boots. Where's my
tunic? Go on, old fellow, I'll follow you."
Barry held his tunic for him.
"Here you are! Wake up, doc! And here's your Sam Brown."
Barry dropped to lace the doctor's boots, while the latter was
buckling on the rest of his equipment.
"All right," cried the doctor, rushing from the room and leaving
his lifebelt behind him.
Barry caught up the lifebelt and followed.
"Your lifebelt, doc," he said, as they passed up the companion way.
"Oh, I'm a peach of a soldier," said the doctor, struggling into
his lifebelt, and swearing deeply the while.
"Stop swearing, doc! It's a waste of energy."
"Oh, go to hell!"
"No, I prefer Heaven, if I must leave this ship, but for the
present, I believe I'm needed here, and so are you, doc. Look
there!"
The doctor glanced out upon the deck.
"By Jove! You're right, old man, we are needed and badly. I say,
old chap," he said, pausing for a moment to turn to Barry, "you are a
dear old thing, aren't you?"
The deck was a mass of soldiers struggling, swearing, fighting
their way to their various stations. Officers, half dressed and half
awake, were rushing hither and thither, seeking their units, swearing
at the men and shouting meaningless orders. Over all the stentorian
voice of the sergeant major was vainly trying to make itself
understood.
In the confusion the cry was raised: "We're torpedoed! We're
going down!"
There was a great rush for the nearest boats. Men flung discipline
to the winds and began fighting for a chance of their lives. It was
a terrific and humiliating scene.
Suddenly, over the tumult, was heard a loud, ringing laugh.
"Oh, I say, Duff! Not that way! Not that way!"
Again came the ringing laugh.
Immediately a silence fell upon the struggling crowd, and for a
moment they stood looking inquiringly at each other. That moment of
silence was seized by the sergeant major. Like a trumpet his sonorous
voice rang out steady and clear.
"Fall in, men! Boat quarters! Silence there!"
He followed this with sharp, intelligible commands to his N. C.
O.'s. Like magic, order fell upon the turbulent, struggling crowd.
"Stand steady, you there!" roared the sergeant major, who having
got control of his men, began to indulge himself in a few telling and
descriptive adjectives.
In less than two minutes, the men were standing steady as a rock
and the panic was passed.
"Who was it that laughed up there in that stampede?" inquired the
O. C., when the officers were gathered about him in the orderly room.
"I think it was the Sky Pilot, sir--the chaplain, sir," said
Lieutenant Stewart Duff.
"Was it you that laughed, Captain Dunbar?" asked the colonel,
turning upon Barry.
"Perhaps I did, sir. I'm sorry if--"
"Sorry!" exclaimed the colonel. "Dammit, sir, you saved the
situation for us all. Who told you it was a false alarm?"
"No one, sir. I didn't know it was a false alarm. I was looking
at Lieutenant Duff--" He checked himself promptly. "I mean, sir--
well, it seemed a good place to laugh, so I just let it come."
The colonel's eyes rested with curious inquiry upon the serene face
of the chaplain, with its glowing eyes and candid expression. "A
good place for a laugh? It was a damned good place for a laugh, and
gentlemen, I thank God I have one officer who finds in the face of
sudden danger a good place for a laugh. And now I have something to
say to you."
The O. C.'s remarks did not improve the officers' opinion of
themselves, and they slunk out of the room--no other word properly
describes the cowed and shamed appearance of that company of men--
they slunk out of the room. They had failed to play the part of
British officers in the face of sudden peril.
In his speech to the men, the C. O. made only a single reference to
the incident, but that reference bit deep.
"Men, I am thoroughly ashamed and disappointed. You acted, not
like soldiers, but like a herd of steers. The difference between a
herd of steers and a battalion of soldiers, in the face of sudden
danger, is only this:--the steers break blindly for God knows where,
and end piled up over a cut bank; soldiers stand steady listening for
the word of command."
If the O. C. handled the men with a light hand, the sergeant major
did not. His tongue rasped them to the raw. No one knows a soldier
as does his N. C. O., and no N. C. O. is qualified to set forth the
soldier's characteristics with the intimate knowledge and adequate
fluency of the sergeant major. One by one he peeled from their
shivering souls the various layers of their moral cuticle, until they
stood, in their own and in each other's eyes, objects of
commiseration.
"There's just one thing more I wad like ta say to ye." The
sergeant major's tendency to Doric was more noticeable in his moments
of deeper feeling, "but it's something for you lads to give heed ta.
When ye were scrammlin' up yonder, like a lot o' mavericks at a
brandin', and yowlin' like a bunch o' coyotes, there was one man in
the regiment who could laugh. There's lots o' animals that the
Almighty made can yowl, but there's only one can laugh, and that's a
mon. For God's sake, men, when ye're in a tight place, try a laugh."
For some weeks after this event the chaplain was known throughout
the battalion as "the man that can laugh," and certain it is that
from that day there existed between the M. O. and the chaplain a new
bond of friendship.
As the ship advanced deeper into the submarine zone, the sole topic
of thought and of conversation came to be the convoy. Where was that
convoy anyway? While the daylight lasted, a thousand pairs of eyes
swept the horizon, and the intervening spaces of tossing, blue-grey
water, for the sight of a sinister periscope, or for the smudge of a
friendly cruiser, and when night fell, a thousand pairs of ears
listened with strained intentness for the impact of the deadly torpedo
or for the signal of the protecting convoy.
While still a day and a night out from land, Barry awoke in the
dim light of a misty morning, and proceeded to the deck for his
constitutional. There he fell in with Captain Neil Fraser and
Captain Hopeton pacing up and down.
"Come along, Pilot!" said Captain Neil, heartily, between whom and
the chaplain during the last few days a cordial friendship had sprung
up. "We're looking for submarines. This is the place and the time
for Fritz, if he is going to get us at all."
Arm in arm they made the circle of the deck. The mist, lying like
a bank upon the sea, shifted the horizon to within a thousand yards
of the ship.
"I wish I knew just what lies behind that bank there," said Captain
Hopeton, pointing over the bow.
For some moments they stood, peering idly into the mist.
"By Jove, there IS something there," said Barry, who had a hawk's
eye.
"You've got 'em too, eh," laughed Hopeton. "I've had 'em for the
last forty-eight hours. I've been 'seein' things' all night."
"But there is," insisted Barry, pointing over the port bow.
"What is it like?" asked Captain Neil, while Hopeton ran for his
glass.
"I'll tell you what it's like--exactly like the eye of an oyster in
its pulp. And, by Jove, there's another!" added Barry excitedly.
"I can't see anything," said Captain Neil.
"But I can," insisted Barry. "Look there, Hopeton!"
Hopeton fixed his glass upon the mist, where Barry pointed.
"You're right! There is something, and there are two of them."
"Give the Pilot the glass, Hopeton," said Neil. "He's got a good
eye."
"There are two ships, boys, as I'm a sinner, but what they are, I
don't know," cried Barry in a voice tense with excitement. "Here,
Neil, take the glass. You know about ships."
Long and earnestly, Captain Neil held the glass in the direction
indicated.
"Boys, by all that's holy, they're destroyers," he said at length
in a low voice.
Even as they gazed, the two black dots rapidly took shape, growing
out of the mist into two sea monsters, all head and shoulders, boring
through the seas, each flinging high a huge comb of white spray, and
with an indescribable suggestion of arrogant, resistless power,
bearing down upon the ship at furious speed.
"Destroyers!" shouted Captain Neil, in a voice that rang through
the ship. "By gad, destroyers!"
There was no question of friend or foe; only Great Britain's navy
rode over those seas immune.
Upon every hand the word was caught up and passed along. In a
marvellously short space of time, the rails, the boats, the rigging,
all the points of vantage were thronged with men, roaring, waving,
cheering, like mad.
With undiminished speed, each enveloped in its cloud of spray, the
destroyers came, one on each side, rushed foaming past, swept in a
circle around the ship and took their stations alongside, riding
quietly at half speed like bulldogs tugging at a leash.
"Great heavens, what a sight!" At the croak in Hopeton's voice,
the others turned and looked at him.
"You've got it too, eh!" said Captain Neil, clearing his own
throat.
"I've got something, God knows!" answered Hopeton, wiping his eyes.
"I, too," said Barry, swallowing the proverbial lump. "Those
little--little--"
"Bulldogs," suggested Hopeton.
"Bulldog pups," said Captain Neil.
"That's it," said Barry. "That's what they are, little bulldog
pups, got me by the throat all right."
"Me, too, by gad!" said Captain Neil. "I should have howled out
loud in another minute."
"Listen to the boys!" cried Barry.
From end to end of the ship rose one continuous roar, "Good old
Navy! Good old John Bull!" while Hopeton, openly abandoning the
traditional reserve and self-control supposed to be a characteristic
of the English public school boy, climbed upon the rail and, hanging
by a stanchion with one hand, and with the other frantically waving
his cap over his head, continued to shout:
"England! England! England forever!"
Then above the cheering cries was heard the battalion band, and
from a thousand throats in solemn chant there rose the Empire's
national anthem, "God Save the King."
That night they steamed into old Plymouth town, and the following
morning were anchored safe at Devonport dock. Strict orders held the
officers and men on board ship until arrangements for debarkation
should be completed, but to Barry and the doctor, the Commanding
Officer gave shore leave for an hour.
"And I would suggest," he said, "that you go and have a talk with
that old boy walking up and down the dock there. Yarn to him about
Canada, he's wild to know about it."
The old naval officer was indeed "wild to know about Canada," so
that the greater part of their shore leave was spent in answering his
questions, and eager though he was to explore the old historic town,
before Barry knew it, he was in the full tide of a glowing description
of his own Province of Alberta, extolling its great ranches, its
sweeping valleys, its immense resources.
"And to think you are all British out there," exclaimed the old
salt.
"We're all British, of course," replied Barry, "but not all from
Britain."
"I know, I know," said the officer, "but that only makes it more
wonderful."
"Wonderful! Why, why should it be wonderful?"
"Yes, wonderful. Oh, you Canadians," cried the old salt,
impulsively stretching out his hand to Barry. "You Canadians!"
Surprised, Barry glanced at his face. Those hard blue eyes were
brimming with tears; the leatherlike skin was working curiously about
the mouth.
"Why, sir, I don't quite understand what you mean," said Barry.
"No, and you never will. Think of it, rushing three thousand
miles--"
"Five thousand for some of us," interrupted Barry.
"Fancy that! Rushing five thousand miles in this way, to help old
mother England, and all of your own free will. We didn't ask it of
you. Though, by heaven, we're grateful for it. I find it difficult,
sir, to speak quietly of this."
Not until that moment had Barry caught the British point of view.
To him, as to all Canadians, it had only been a perfectly reasonable
and natural thing that when the Empire was threatened, they should
spring into the fight. They saw nothing heroic in that. They were
doing their simple duty.
"But think of the wonder of it," said the naval officer again,
"that Canada should feel in that way its response to the call of the
blood."
The old man's lips were still quivering.
"That is true, sir," said the M. O., joining in the talk, "but
there is something more. Frankly, my opinion is that the biggest
thing, sir, with some of us in Canada, is not that the motherland was
in need of help, though, of course, we all feel that, but that the
freedom of the world is threatened, and that Canada, as one of the
free nations of the world, must do her part in its defence."
"A fine spirit," said the old gentleman.
"This fight," continued the M. O., "is ours, you see, as well as
yours, and we hate a bully."
The old salt swore a great oath, and said:
"You are pups of the old breed, and you run true to type. I'm glad
to know you, gentlemen," he continued, shaking them warmly by the
hand.
After they had gone a few steps he called Barry back to him.
"That's my card, sir. I should like you to come to see me in
London sometime when you are on leave."
Barry glanced at the card and read, "Commander Howard Vincent, R.
N. R."
"It was very decent of the old boy," he said to the Commanding
Officer afterwards, when recounting the interview. "I don't suppose
I'll ever use the card, but I do think he really meant it."
"Meant it," exclaimed the Commanding Officer. "Why, Dunbar, I'm an
old country man, and I know. Make no mistake. These people, and
especially these naval people, do not throw their cards loosely
about. You will undoubtedly hear from him."
"It's not likely," replied Barry, "but the old gentleman is great
stuff, all right."
During the long, sunny spring day, their dinky little train whisked
them briskly through the sweet and restful beauty of the English
southern counties. To these men, however, from the wide sunbaked,
windswept plains of western Canada, the English landscape suggested a
dainty picture, done in soft greys and greens, with here and there a
vivid splash of colour, where the rich red soil broke through the
green. But its tiny fields set off with hedges, and lines of trees,
its little, clean-swept villages, with their picturesque church
spires, its parks with deer that actually stood still to look at you,
its splendid manor houses, and, at rare intervals, its turreted
castles, gave these men, fresh from the raw, unmeasured and unmade
west, a sense of unreality. To them it seemed a toy landscape for
children to play with, but, as they passed through the big towns and
cities with their tall, clustering chimneys, their crowding
populations, with unmistakable evidences of great wealth, their
shipping, where the harbours bit into the red coast line, there began
to waken in them the thought that this tiny England, so beautifully
finished, and so neatly adorned, was something mightier than they had
ever known.
In these tiny fields, in these clean swept villages, in these manor
houses, in these castles, in factory and in shipyard, were struck
deep the roots of an England whose greatness they had never yet
guessed.
The next afternoon brought them to the great military camp at
Shorncliffe, in a misty rain, hungry, for their rations had been
exhausted early in the day, weary from ship and train travel, and
eager to get their feet once again on mother earth.
At the little station they were kept waiting in a pouring rain for
something to happen, they knew not what. The R. T. O., a young
Imperial officer, blase with his ten months of war in England, had
some occult reason for delaying their departure. So, while the night
grew every moment wetter and darker, the men sat on their kit-bags or
found such shelter as they could in the tiny station, or in the lee of
the "goods trains" blocking the railroad tracks, growing more
indignant and more disgusted with the British high command, the war in
general, and registering with increasing intensity vows of vengeance
against the Kaiser, who, in the last analysis, they considered
responsible for their misery.
At length the "brass hat" for whom they had been waiting appeared
upon the scene, not in the slightest degree apologetic, but very
businesslike, and with a highly emphasised military manner. After a
little conversation between the brass hat and their Commanding
Officer, the latter gave the command and off they set in the darkness
for their first route march on English soil.
Through muddy roads and lanes, over fields, slushy and sodden, up
hill and down dale, they plodded steadily along. At the rear of the
colunm marched Barry with the M. O.
Long before they reached their destination, their conversation had
given out, the M. O. sucking sullenly at his pipe, the bowl upside
down. The rear end of the column was very frayed and straggling. Why
it is that a perfectly fit company will invariably fray out if placed
at the rear of a marching column, no military expert has quite
succeeded in satisfactorily explaining.
As he tramped along in the dark by the side of the road, the M. O.
stumbled over a soldier sitting upon the soggy bank.
"Who are you?" he inquired shortly.
"Corporal Thom, sir."
"What's the matter with you?"
"I'm all in, sir. I've been sick all day, sir."
"Why didn't you report sick, then? Can't you get on?"
"I don't think so, sir. Not for a while, at least."
"Have you any pain, any nausea?"
"No, sir, I'm just all in."
"Do you know our route?"
"Yes, sir, I've got the turns down."
"Well, come along then when you can. I'll send back a waggon
later, but don't wait for that."
"Yes, sir," said Corporal Thom.
"Come on, Dunbar! We'll send a waggon back for these stragglers.
There will be a good many of them before long."
"You go on, doc. I'll come later," said Barry. "I'll catch up to
you."
But the M. O., at the various halts, waited in vain for the
chaplain to appear.
On arriving at the camp, after a long struggle, he succeeded in
sending back an Army Service waggon to bring in the stragglers, but
just as the waggon was about to leave, he heard coming up the road, a
party stepping out briskly to the music of their own whistling. In the
rear of the party marched the chaplain, laden down with one man's
rifle and another man's kit-bag.
"They're all here, sir," said Corporal Thom to the M. O., with a
distinct note of triumph in his voice. "All here, sir," he repeated,
as he observed the sergeant major standing at the doctor's side.
"Well done, corporal," said the sergeant major. "You brought 'em
all in? That means that no man has fallen out on our first march in
this country."
The corporal made no reply, but later on, he explained the matter
to the sergeant major.
"It's that Sky Pilot of ours, sir," he said. "Blowed if he'd let
us fall out."
"Kept you marching, eh?"
"No, it's his chocolate and his jaw, but more his jaw than his
chocolate. He's got lots of both. I was all in. I'd been sick all
day in the train. Couldn't eat a bite. Well, the first thing, he
gives me a cake of his chocolate. Then he sets himself down in the
mud beside me, and me wishin' all the time he'd go on and leave me for
the waggon to pick up. Then he gives me a cigarette, and then he
begins to talk."
"Talk, what about?"
"Damned if I know, but the first thing I knew I was tellin' him
about the broncho bustin',--that's my job, you know--and how I won
out from Nigger Jake in the Calgary Stampede, until I was that stuck
on myself that I said: 'Well, sir, we'd better get a move on,' and up
he gets with my kit-bag on his back. By and by, we picks up another
lame duck and then another, feedin' 'em with chocolate and slingin'
his jaw, and when we was at the limit, he halts us outside one of them
stone shacks and knocks at the door. 'No soldiers here,' snaps the
red-headed angel, shuttin' the door right in his face. Then he opens
the door and steps right in where she could see him, and starts to
talk to her, and us listening out in the rain. Say! In fifteen
minutes we was all standin' up to a feed of coffee and buns, and then
he gets Harry Hobbs whistlin' and singin', and derned if we couldn't
have marched to Berlin. Say! He's a good one, ain't no quitter, and
he won't let nobody else be a quitter."
And thus it came that with Corporal Thom and his derelicts the
chaplain marched into a new place in the esteem of the men of his
battalion, and of its sergeant major.
But of this, of course, Barry had no knowledge. He knew that he
had made some little progress into the confidence of both officers
and men in his battalion. He had made, too, some firm friendships
which had relieved, to a certain extent, the sense of isolation and
loneliness that had made his first months with the battalion so
appalling. But there still remained the sense of failure inasfar as
his specific duty as chaplain was concerned.
The experiences of the first weeks in England only served to deepen
in him the conviction that his influence on the men against the evils
which were their especial snare was as the wind against the incoming
tide, beating in from the North Sea. He could make a ripple, a
certain amount of fussy noise, but the tide of temptation rolled
steadily onward, unchecked in its flow.
The old temptations to profanity, drink and lust, that had haunted
the soldiers' steps at home, were found to be lying in wait for them
here and in aggravated form. True, in the mess and in his presence
among the men there was less profanity than there had been at the
first, but it filled him with a kind of rage to feel that this change
was due to no sense of the evil of the habit, but solely to an
unwillingness to give offence to one whom many of them were coming to
regard with respect and some even with affection.
"I hate that," he said to the M. O., to whom he would occasionally
unburden his soul. "You'd think I was a kind of policeman over their
morals."
"Oh, I wouldn't worry about that," said the M. O., to whom the
habit of profanity was a very venial sin. "You ought to be mighty
glad that your presence does act as a kind of moral prophylactic. And
it does, I assure you. I confess that since I have come to be
associated with you, I am conscious of a very real, and at times,
distressing limitation of my vocabulary. I may not be more virtuous,
but certainly I am more respectable."
This sentiment, however, brought little comfort to the chaplain.
"I am not a policeman," he protested, "and I am not going to play
policeman to these men. I notice them shut up when I come around,
but I know quite well that they turn themselves loose when I pass on,
and that they feel much more comfortable. I am not and will not be
their policeman."
"What then would you be?" inquired the M. O.
Barry pondered this question for some time.
"To tell the truth," he said, at length, "I confess, I don't quite
know. I wish I did, doc, on my soul. One thing I do know, the men
are no better here in their morals than they were at home."
"Better? They are worse, by Jove!" exclaimed the M. O. "Look at
the daily crime-sheet! Look at that daily orderly room parade. It's
something fierce, and it's getting worse."
"The wet canteen?" inquired Barry, who had lost prestige with some
in the battalion by reason of the strenuous fight he had made against
its introduction since coming to England. Not that the men cared so
much for their liquor, but they resented the idea that they were
denied privileges enjoyed by other battalions.
"The wet canteen?" echoed the doctor. "No, you know I opposed, as
you did, the introduction of the wet canteen, although not upon the
same grounds. I regard it as a perfect nuisance in camp. It is the
centre of every disorder, it is subversive of discipline; it
materially increases my sick parade. But it is not the wet canteen
that is chiefly responsible for the growing crime-sheet and orderly
room parade. It is those damned--I don't apologise--"
"Please don't. Say it again!" exclaimed Barry fervently.
"Those damned pubs," continued the M. O., "stuck at every
crossroads in this country. They're the cause of ninety per cent. of
the drunkenness in our army, and more than that, I want to give you
another bit of information that came out at our M. O. conference this
week, namely that these pubs account for ninety per cent. of our tent
hospital cases."
"Ninety per cent., doctor? That's surely high."
"I would have said so, but I am giving you the unanimous verdict of
the twenty-six medical officers at the conference. Cut out the
damned beer--and you know I take my share of it--cut out the beer and
ninety per cent. of the venereal disease goes. With me it is not a
question of morality but of efficiency." Here the M. O. sprang from
his chair and began to pace the hut. "This is the one thing in this
army business that makes me wild. We come over here to fight--these
boys are willing to fight--and by gad they will fight! They go out
for a walk, they have a few beers together, their inhibitory powers
are paralysed, opportunity comes their way, and they wake up a little
later diseased. God in heaven! I love this dear old England, and I
would die for her if need be, but may God Almighty damn her public
houses, and all the infernal and vicious customs which they nourish."
"Thank you, doctor, go right on," said Barry. "I was at the tent
hospital this week for the first time. Ever since, I have been
wanting to say what you have said just now. But what did your M. O.
conference do about it?"
"What could we do? The Home Office blocks the way. Well, I've got
that off my stomach, and I feel better," added the M. O., with a
slight laugh.
"But, doc, I want to say this," said Barry. "I don't believe that
the percentage of men who go in for this sort of thing is large. I've
been making inquiries from our chaplains and they all agree that we
have a mighty fine and clean body of men in our Canadian army."
"Right you are! Of course, it is only a small percentage, a very
small percentage--a much smaller percentage than in our civilian
population at home. But small as it is, it is just that much too
many. Hell and blazes! These men are soldiers. They have left
their homes, and their folks, to fight. Their people--their people
are the best in our land. There's that young Pentland. A finer
young chap never threw a leg over a broncho. He's in that tent
hospital to-night. I know his mother. Three sons she has given. Oh,
damn it all," the doctor's voice broke at this point. "I can't speak
quietly. Their mothers have given them up, to death, if need be, but
not to this rotten, damnable disease. Look here, Pilot!" The doctor
pointed a shaking and accusing finger at Barry. "You have often
spoken against this thing, but next time you break loose, give them
merry hell over it. You can't make it too hot."
Long Barry sat silent overborne by the fury of the doctor's
passionate indictment.
"Cheer up, old chap!" said the doctor, when his wrath had somewhat
subsided. "We'll lick the Kaiser and beat the devil yet."
"But, doctor, what can I do?" implored Barry. "That's part of my
job, surely. Part of the job of the chaplain service, I mean. Oh,
that is the ghastly tragedy of this work of mine. Somehow I can't
get at it. These evils exist. I can speak against them and make
enemies, but the things go on just as before."
"Don't you believe it, Pilot, not quite as before. Behold how you
have already checked my profanity. Even the old man has pretty much
cut it out at mess. You don't know where they would have been but for
you. Cheer up! Our wings may not be visible but, on the other hand,
there are no signs of horns and hoofs."
"Doctor, one thing I'll do," cried Barry, with a sudden inspiration
"We've a meeting of the chaplains' corps to-morrow. I'll give them
your speech."
"Expurgated edition, I hope," said the M. O.
"No, I'll put in every damn I can remember, and, if need be, a few
more."
"Lord, I'd like to be there, old boy!" said the doctor, fervently.
Barry was as good as his word. At the meeting of the chaplains'
corps, the time was mainly taken up in routine business, dealing with
arrangements for religious services at the various camps within the
area.
At the close of the meeting, however, one of the chaplains rose and
announced that he had a matter to bring to the attention of the
corps--a matter of the highest importance, which demanded their
immediate and serious attention, and which they dared not any longer
ignore. It was the matter of venereal disease in our Canadian army.
His statistics and illustrative incidents gripped hard the hearts
of the men present. He closed with a demand that steps be taken that
day to deal with the situation. The Canadian people had entrusted
them with the care of their boys' souls. "Their souls," he cried. "I
say our first duty is to their bodies. I am not saying the percentage
is large. It is not as large as in the civilian population at home.
But why any? We must care for these men's bodies. They fight with
their bodies."
His last sentence struck Barry to the heart. It recalled his own
sermon, spoken in Edmonton to his father's battalion. Immediately he
was on his feet, and without preface or apology, reproduced as far as
he was able the M. O.'s speech of the previous night, and that without
expurgation.
There was but little discussion. There was but one opinion. It
was resolved to call a joint meeting of the chaplains and medical
officers to decide upon a course of action.
As Barry was leaving the meeting, the senior chaplain, an old
Anglican clergyman, with a saintly face and a smile that set one's
tenderest emotions astir, came to him, and putting his hand
affectionately upon his shoulder, said:
"And how is your work going, my dear fellow?"
It was to Barry as if his father's hand were upon his shoulder, and
before he was aware he was pouring out the miserable story of his own
sad failure as a chaplain.
"Poor boy! Poor boy!" the old gentleman kept saying. "I know how
you feel. Just so, just so!"
When Barry had finished relieving his heart of the burden that had
so long lain upon it, the old gentleman took him by the hand and
said:
"My dear fellow, remember they are far from home. These boys need
their mothers. They sorely need their mothers! And, my boy, they
need God. And they need you. Good-bye!"
Barry came away with a warm feeling in his heart, and in it a new
purpose and resolve. No longer would he be a policeman to his men.
He would try to forget their faults, and to remember only how sorely
they needed their mothers and their God, and that they needed him,
too.
He found the camp thrilling with great news, glorious news. The
day so long awaited had come. The battalion was under orders for
France. At that very moment there was an officers' meeting in the
orderly room.
As Barry entered the room, the O. C. was closing his speech.
Barry was immediately conscious of a new tone, a new spirit, in the
colonel's words. He spoke with a new sense of responsibility, and
what more than anything else arrested Barry's attention, with a new
sense of brotherhood toward his officers.
"In closing what I have to say, gentlemen, let me make a
confession. I am not satisfied with the battalion, nor with my
officers. I am not satisfied with myself. I remember being indignant
at the report sent in by the inspecting officer concerning this
battalion. I thought he was unfair and unduly severe. I believe I
said so. Gentlemen, I was wrong. Since that time I have seen work in
some regiments of the Imperial Service, and especially, I have seen
the work on the front line. I think I know now what discipline means.
Discipline, gentlemen, is the thing that saves an army from disaster.
Some things we must cut out absolutely. Whatever unfits for service
must go. I saw a soldier, a Canadian soldier, shot at the front for
being intoxicated. I pray God, I may never see the like again. At
this point, I wish to express my appreciation of the work of our
chaplain, who I am glad to see has just come in. He has stood for
the right thing among us, and has materially helped in the discipline
and efficiency of this battalion. Gentlemen, you have your orders.
Let there be no failure. Obedience is demanded, not excuses.
Gentlemen, carry on!"
Barry hurried away to his hut. The words of his colonel had lifted
him out of his despair. He had not then so desperately failed. His
colonel had found something in him to approve. And France was before
him! There was still a chance for service. The boys would need him
there.
"France, sunny France!" The tone carried concentrated bitterness
and disgust. "One cursed fraud after another in this war."
"Cheer up!" said Barry. "There's worse to come--perhaps better.
This rain is beastly, but the clouds will pass, and the sun will
shine again, for in spite of the rain this IS 'sunny France.' There's
a little homily for you," said Barry, "and for myself as well, for I
assure you this combination of mal de mer and sleet makes one feel
rotten."
"Everything is rotten," grumbled Duff, gazing gloomily through the
drizzling rain at the rugged outline of wharves that marked the
Boulogne docks.
"Look at this," cried Duff, sweeping his hand toward the deck.
"You would think this stuff was shot out of the blower of a threshing
machine--soldier's baggage, kits, quartermaster's stores--and this is
a military organisation. Good Lord!"
"Lieutenant Duff! Is Lieutenant Duff here?" It was the O. C.'s
voice.
"Yes, sir," said Duff, going forward and saluting.
"Mr. Duff, I wish you to take charge of the Transport for the
present. Lieutenant Bonner is quite useless--helpless, I mean. You
will find Sergeant Mackay a reliable man. Sorry I couldn't give you
longer notice. I think, however, you are the man for the job."
"I'll do my best, sir," said Duff, saluting, as the O. C. turned
away.
"What did I tell you, Duff?" said Barry. "You certainly are in for
it, and you have my sympathy."
"Sympathy! Don't you worry about me," said Duff. "This is just
the kind of thing I like. I haven't run a gang of navvies in the
Crow's Nest Pass for nothing. You watch my smoke. But, one word,
Pilot! When you see me bearing down, full steam ahead, give me room!
I'll make this go or bust something." Then in a burst of confidence,
he took Barry by the arm, and added in a low voice: "And if I live,
Pilot, I'll be running something in this war bigger than the Transport
of a battalion before I'm done."
Barry let his eyes run over the powerful figure, the rugged,
passionate face, lit up now with gleaming eyes, and said:
"I believe you, Duff. Meantime, I'll watch your smoke."
"Do!" replied Duff with superb self-confidence. And it was worth
while during the next hour to watch Duff evolve order out of chaos.
First of all he put into his men and into his sergeant the fear of
death. But he did more than that. He breathed into them something
of his own spirit of invincible determination. He had them springing
at his snappy orders with an eagerness that was in itself the larger
half of obedience, and as they obeyed they became conscious that they
were working under the direction of a brain that had a perfected plan
of action, and that held its details firmly in its grasp.
Not only did Duff show himself a master of organisation and
control, but in a critical moment he himself leaped into the breach,
and did the thing that balked his men. Did a heavy transport wagon
jamb at the gangway, holding up the traffic, with a spring, Duff was
at the wheel. A heave of his mighty shoulders, and the wagon went
roaring down the gangway. Did a horse, stupid with terror, from its
unusual surroundings, balk, Duff had a "twitch" on its upper lip, and
before it knew what awful thing had gripped it, the horse was lifted
clear out of its tracks, and was on its way to the dock.
Before he had cleared the ship, Duff had a circle of admirers about
him, gazing as if at a circus.
"An energetic officer you have there," said the brass hat standing
beside the colonel.
"A new man. This is his first time on the transport," replied the
colonel.
"Quite remarkable! Quite remarkable!" exclaimed the brass hat.
"That unloading must have been done in record time, and in spite of
quite unusual conditions."
The boat being clear and the loads made up, Duff approached the
Commanding Officer.
"All ready, sir," he announced. "Shall we move off? I should like
to get a start. The roads will be almost impassable, I'm afraid."
"Do you know the route?" asked the Commanding Officer.
"Yes, sir, I have it here."
"All right, go ahead, Duff. A mighty good piece of work you have
done there."
"Thank you, sir," said Duff, saluting and turning away.
"Move off, there," he shouted to the leading team.
The driver started the team but they slipped, plunged and fell
heavily. Duff was at their heads before any other man could move.
"Get hold here, men," he yelled. "Take hold of that horse. What
are you afraid of?" he cried to a groom who was gingerly approaching
the struggling animal. "Now then, all together!"
When he had the team on their feet again, he said to the grooms
standing at their heads, "Jump up on the horses' backs; that will
help the them to hold their footing."
There was some slight hesitation on the part of the grooms.
"Come on!" he roared, and striding to the horse nearest him, he
flung himself upon its back.
A groom mounted the other, and once more a start was made, but they
had not gone more than a few steps, when the groom's horse fell
heavily, and rolled over on its side, pinning the unfortunate man
beneath him.
There was a shriek of agony. In an instant Duff was off his horse
and at the head of the fallen animal.
"Medical officer here!" he shouted. "Now then, two of you men.
One of you pull out that man while we lift."
The horse's head and shoulders were lifted clear, and the injured
man was pulled out of danger.
"Take him out of the way, please, doctor," said Duff, to the M. O.,
who was examining the groom.
"Sergeant!"
His sergeant literally sprang to his side.
"Get me a dozen bags," he said.
"Bags, sir? I don't know where--"
"Bags," repeated Duff savagely. "Canvas, anything to wrap around
these horses' feet."
The sergeant without further words plunged into the darkness,
returning almost immediately with half a dozen bags.
"Thanks, sergeant; that's the way to move. Now get some more!"
Under Duff's directions the bags were tied about the feet of the
horses, thus enabling them to hold their footing, and the transport
moved off in the darkness.
Returning from the disposing of the injured man, the M. O. found
Barry shivering with the cold, and weak from his recent attack of
seasickness.
"There will be no end of a sick parade to-morrow morning, and
you'll be one of them," grumbled the M. O. "If they don't move them
out of here soon they'll take them away in ambulances. There are a
hundred men at this moment fit to go to hospital, but the O. C. won't
hear of it."
"Doc, they ought to have something hot. The kitchens are left
behind, I understand. Let me have a couple of your men, and let me
see what I can do."
"It's no use, I've tried all the hotels about here. They're full
up."
"No harm trying, doc," said Barry, and off he went.
But he found the hotels full up, as the doctor had said. After
much inquiry, he found his way to the Y. M. C. A. A cheerful but
sleepy secretary, half dead with the fatigue of a heavy day
ministering to soldiers "going up the line," could offer him no help
at all.
"Do you mean to say that there is no place in this town," said
Barry desperately, "where a sick man can get a dish of coffee?"
"Sick man!" cried the secretary. "Why, certainly! Why not try the
R. A. M. C.? They've a hospital half a mile up the street. They
will certainly help you out. I'll come with you."
"No, you don't," said Barry. "You go back to bed. I'll find the
place."
Half a mile up the street, as the secretary had said, Barry came
upon the flaring lantern of the R. A. M. C., at the entrance to a
huge warehouse, the gate of which stood wide open.
Entering the courtyard, Barry found a group of men about a blazing
fire.
"May I see the officer in charge?" he asked, approaching the group.
The men glanced at his rank badges.
"Yes, sir," said a sergeant, clicking his heels smartly. "Can I do
anything for you, sir?"
"Thank you," said Barry, and told him his wants.
"We have plenty of biscuits," said the sergeant, "and coffee, too.
You are welcome to all you can carry, but I don't see how we can do
any more for you. But would you like to see the officer in charge,
sir?"
"Thank you," said Barry, and together they passed into another
room.
But the officer was engaged elsewhere. While they were discussing
the matter, a door opened, and a young girl dressed in the uniform of
a V. A. D. (Voluntary Aid Detachment) appeared.
"What is it, sergeant?" she inquired, in a soft but rather tired
voice.
The sergeant explained, while she listened with mild interest.
Then Barry took up the tale, and proceeded to dilate upon the
wretched condition of his comrades, out in the icy rain. But his
story moved the V. A. D. not at all. She had seen too much of the
real misery and horrors of war. Barry began to feel discouraged, and
indeed a little ashamed of himself.
"You see, we have just come over," he said in an apologetic tone,
"and we don't know much about war yet."
"You are Canadians?" cried the girl, a new interest dawning in her
eyes. As she came into the light, Barry noticed that they were
brown, and that they were very lustrous.
"I love the Canadians," she exclaimed. "My brother was a liaison
artillery officer at Ypres; with them, at the time of the gas, you
know. He liked them immensely." Her voice was soft and sad.
Unconsciously Barry let his eyes fall to the black band on her arm.
"He was with the Canadians, too, when he was killed at Armentieres,
three months ago."
"Killed!" exclaimed Barry. "Oh, I am so sorry for you."
"I had two brothers," she went on, in her gentle even tone. "One
was killed at Landrecies, on the retreat from Mons, you know."
"No," said Barry, "I'm afraid I don't know about it. Tell me!"
"It was a great fight," said the girl. "Oh, a splendid fight!" A
ring came into her voice and a little colour into her cheek. "They
tried to rush our men, but they couldn't. My oldest brother was
there in charge of a machine gun section. The machine guns did
wonderful work. The colonel came to tell us about it. He said it
was very fine." There was no sign of tears in her eyes, nor tremor
in her voice, only tenderness and pride.
"And your mother is alone now?" inquired Barry.
"Oh, we gave up our house to the government for a hospital. You
see, father was in munitions. He's too old for active service, and
mother is matron in the hospital. She was very unwilling that I
should come over here. She said I was far too young, but of course
that's quite nonsense. So you see, we are all in it."
"It is perfectly amazing," said Barry. "You British women are
wonderful!"
The brown eyes opened a little wider.
"Wonderful? Why, what else could we do? But the Canadians! I
think they're wonderful, coming all this way to fight."
"I can't see that," said Barry. "That's what that old naval boy at
Devonport said, but I can't see that it's anything wonderful that we
should fight for our Empire."
"Devonport! A naval officer!" The girl lost her calm. She became
excited. "What was his name?"
"I have his card here," said Barry, taking out his pocket book and
handing her the card.
"My uncle!" she cried. "Why, how perfectly splendid!" offering
Barry her hand. "Why, we're really introduced. Then you're the man
that Uncle Howard--" She stopped abruptly, a flush on her cheek.
Then she turned to the N. C. O. "Yes, sergeant, that will do," as
the man brought half a dozen large biscuit cans and as many large
bottles of prepared coffee.
As Barry's eyes fell upon the biscuit cans an idea came to him.
"Will these cans hold water?" he inquired.
"Yes, sir," replied the sergeant.
"Then, we're fixed," cried Barry, in high delight. "This is
perfectly fine."
"What do you mean?" asked the girl.
"We'll dump the biscuits, and boil the coffee in the cans. I
haven't camped on the Athabasca for nothing. Now we're all right and
I suppose we must go."
The V. A. D. hesitated a moment, then she took the sergeant to one
side, and entered into earnest and persuasive talk with him.
"It's against regulations, miss," Barry heard him say, "and
besides, you know, we're expecting a hospital train any minute, and
every car will be needed."
"Then I'll take my own car," she said. "It's all ready and has the
chains on, sergeant, I think."
"Yes, it's quite ready, but you will get me into trouble, miss."
"Then, I'll get you out again. Load those things in, while I run
and change-- I'm going to drive you out to your camp," she said to
Barry as she hurried away.
The sergeant shook his head as he looked after her.
"She's a thoroughbred, sir," he said. "We jump when she asks us
for anything. She's a real blooded one; not like some, sir--like
some of them fullrigged ones. They keep 'er 'oppin'."
"Fullrigged ones?" inquired Barry.
"Them nurses, I mean, sir. They loves to 'awe them--them young
'Vaddies,' as we call them--V. A. D., you know, sir. They keeps 'em
a 'oppin' proper--scrubbin' floors, runnin' messages, but Miss
Vincent, she mostly drives a car."
While the sergeant was dilating upon the virtues and excellences of
the young V. A. D., his men ran out her car, and packed into it the
biscuit tins and coffee. By the time the sergeant was ready she was
back, dressed in a chauffeur's uniform.
Barry had thought her charming in her V. A. D. dress, but in her
uniform she was bewitching. He noticed that her hair clustered in
tiny ringlets about her natty little cap, in quite a maddening way.
One vagrant curl over her ear had a particular fascination for his
eyes. He felt it ought to be tucked in just a shade. He was
conscious of an almost irresistible desire to do the tucking in. What
would happen if--
"Well, are you ready?" inquired the girl in a quick, businesslike
tone.
"What? Oh, yes," said Barry, recalled to the business of the
moment.
During the drive the girl gave her whole attention to her wheel, as
indeed was necessary, for the road was dangerously slippery, and she
drove without lights through the black night. Barry kept up an
endless stream of talk, set going by her command, as she took her
place at the wheel. "Now tell me about Canada. I can listen, but I
can't talk."
In the full tide of his most eloquent passages, Barry found himself
growing incoherent at times, for his mind was in a state of
oscillation between the wonderful and lustrous qualities of the brown
eyes that he remembered flashing upon him in the light of the fire,
and that maddening little curl over the girl's ear.
In an unbelievably short time, so it seemed to him, they came upon
the rear of a marching column.
"These are your men, I fancy," she said, "and this will be your
camp on the left; I know it well. I've often been here."
She swung the car off the road into an open field, set out with
tents, and brought the car to a stop beside an old ruined factory.
"This, I believe, will be the best place for your purpose," she
said, and sprang from her seat, and ran to the ruin, flashing her
torchlight before her. "Here you are," she said. "This will be just
the thing."
Barry followed her a few steps down into the long, stone-flagged
cellar.
"Splendid! This is the very thing," he cried enthusiastically.
"You are really the most wonderful person."
"Now get your stuff in here," she ordered. "But what will you do
for wood? There is always water," she added, "in some tanks further
on. Come, I'll show you."
Barry followed her in growing amazement and admiration at her
prompt efficiency.
"Now then, there are your tanks," she said. "As for wood, I don't
know what you will do, but there is a garden paling a little further
on, and, of course--"
"Don't worry about that," said Barry.
"I won't," with a gay laugh; "I know you Canadians, you see."
Together they returned to the car.
Before she mounted to her seat she turned to Barry, and offered him
her hand and said: "I think it is perfectly ripping that we were
introduced in this way. Though I don't know your name yet," she
added shyly.
"Awfully stupid of me," said Barry, and he gave her his name,
adding that of the regiment, and his rank.
"Good-bye, then," she said, climbing into her car, and starting her
engine.
"But," said Barry, "I must see you safely back."
She laughed a scornful but, as Barry thought, a most delicious
little laugh.
"Nonsense! We don't do that sort of thing here, you know. We're
on our own."
A little silence fell between them.
"When does your battalion march?" she asked abruptly.
"Perhaps to-morrow. I don't know."
"If you do go then," she said, with again that little touch of
shyness, "I suppose I won't see you again."
"See you again," exclaimed Barry, his tone indicating that the
possibility of such a calamity was unthinkable, "why, of course I
shall see you again. I must see you again--I--I--I just must see you
again."
"Good night, then," she said in a soft, hurried voice, throwing in
her clutch.
Barry stood listening in the dark to the hum of her engine, growing
more faint every moment.
"Some girl, eh?" said a voice. At his side he saw Harry Hobbs.
Barry turned sharply upon him.
"Now then, Hobbs, some wood and we will get a fire going and look
lively! And, Hobbs, I believe there's a fence about fifty yards down
there, which you might find useful. Now move. Quick!" Unconsciously
he tried to reproduce, in uttering the last word, Duff's tone and
manner. The effect was evident immediately.
Hobbs without further words departed in the darkness. Again Barry
stood listening to the hum of the engine, until he could no longer
hear it in the noise and confusion of the camp, but in his heart
Harry's words made music.
"Some girl, eh?"
As he stood there in the darkness, hearing that music in his heart,
a voice broke in, swearing hard and deep oaths. It was the M. O.
"Hello, doc, my boy; come here," cried Barry.
The M. O. approached. He was in a state of rage that rendered
coherent speech impossible.
"Oh, quit it, doc. Let me show you something."
He led him into the ruin, where his spoils were cached.
"Biscuits, my boy, and coffee. Hold on! Listen! I'm going to get
a fire going here and in twenty minutes there'll be six cans of
fragrant delicious coffee, boiling hot."
"Why, how the--"
"Doc, don't talk! Listen to me! You round up your sick men, and
bring them quietly over here. I don't know how many I can supply,
but at least, I think, a hundred."
"Why, how the devil--?"
"Go on; I haven't time to talk to you. Get busy!"
Working by flashlight, the men cut open the tins, dumped the
biscuits on a blanket spread in a corner of the cellar, while Barry
made preparations for a fire.
"Here, Hobbs, you punch two holes in these cans, just an inch from
the top."
Soon the fire was blazing cheerily. In its light Barry was
searching through the ruin.
"By Jove," he shouted, "the very thing. Just made for us."
He pulled out a long steel rod from a heap of rubbish and ran with
it to the fire.
"Here, boys, punch a hole in this wall. Now then, for the cans.
String them on this rod."
In twenty minutes the coffee was ready.
"How is it?" he inquired anxiously, handing a mess tin full to one
of his men.
The boy tasted it.
"Like mother made," he said, with a grin. "Gee, but it's good."
At that moment the doctor appeared at the cellar door.
"I say, old chap," he said, "there will be a riot here in fifteen
minutes. That coffee smells the whole camp."
"Bring 'em along, doc. The sick chaps first. By Jove, here's the
sergeant major himself."
"What's all this?" inquired the sergeant major in his gruffest
voice. "Who's responsible for this fire?"
"Coffee, sergeant major?" answered Barry, handing him a tin full.
"But what--?"
"Drink it first, sergeant major."
The sergeant major took the mess tin and tasted the coffee.
"Well, this IS fine," he declared, "and it's what the boys want.
But this fire is against orders, sir. I ought to have it put out."
"You will have it put out over my dead body, sergeant major," cried
the M. O.
"And mine," added Barry.
"By gad, we'll chance the zeps, sir," said the sergeant major.
"This freezin' rain will kill more men than a bomb. Bring in your
men, sir," he added to the M. O. "But I must see the O. C."
The sergeant major's devotion to military discipline was struggling
hard with his humanity, which, under his rugged exterior, beat warm
in his heart.
"Why bother with the O. C.?" said the M. D.
"But I must see him," insisted the sergeant major.
He had not far to go to attain his purpose.
"Hello! What the devil is this?" exclaimed a loud voice at the
door.
"By gad, it's the old man himself," muttered the M. O. to Barry.
"Now look out for ructions."
In came the O. C., followed by a brass hat. Barry went forward
with a steaming tin of coffee.
"Sorry our china hasn't arrived yet, sir," he said cheerfully, "but
the coffee isn't bad, the boys say."
"Why, it's you, Dunbar," said the colonel, peering into his face,
and shaking the rain drops from his coat. "I might have guessed that
you'd be in it. Where there's any trouble," he continued, turning to
the brass hat at his side, "you may be quite sure that the Pilot or
the M. O. here will be in it. By Jove, this coffee goes to the right
spot. Have a cup, major?" he said as Barry brought a second tin.
"It's against regulations, you know," said the major, taking the
mess tin gingerly. "Fires are quite forbidden. Air raids, and that
sort of thing, don't you know."
"Oh, hang it all, major," cried the O. C. "The coffee is fine, and
my men will be a lot better for it. This camp of yours, anyway, is
no place for human beings, and especially for men straight off the
boat. As for me, I'm devilish glad to get this coffee. Give me
another tin, Pilot."
"It's quite irregular," murmured the major, still drinking his
coffee. "It's quite irregular! But I see the door is fairly well
guarded against light, and perhaps--"
"I think we'll just carry on," said the colonel. "If there is any
trouble, I'll assume the responsibility for it. Thank you, Pilot.
Just keep guard on the light here, sergeant major."
"All right, sir. Very good, sir, we will hang up a blanket."
Meanwhile the news had spread throughout the camp, and before many
minutes had passed the cellar was jammed with a crowd of men that
reached through the door and out into the night. The crowd was
becoming noisy and there was danger of confusion. Then the pilot
climbed up on a heap of rubbish and made a little speech.
"Men," he called out, "this coffee is intended first of all for the
sick men in this battalion. Those sick men must first be cared for.
After that we shall distribute the coffee as far as it will go.
There is plenty of water outside, and I think I have plenty of
coffee. Sergeant major, I suggest that you round up these men in
some sort of order."
A few sharp words of command from the sergeant major brought order
out of confusion, and for two hours there filed through the cellar a
continuous stream of men, each bringing an empty mess tin, and
carrying it away full of hot and fragrant coffee.
By the time the men had been supplied the officers were finished
with their duties, and having got word of the Pilot's coffee stall,
came crowding in. One and all they were vociferous in their praise
of the chaplain, voting him a "good fellow" and a "life-saver" of the
highest order. But it was felt by all that Corporal Thom expressed
the general consensus of opinion to his friend Timms. "That Pilot of
ours," he declared, "runs a little to the narrow gauge, but in that
last round up he was telling us about last Sunday there won't be the
goat run for him. It's him for the baa baas, sure enough."
And though in the vernacular the corporal's words did not sound
quite reverent, it was agreed that they expressed in an entirely
satisfactory manner the general opinion of the battalion.
An hour later, wearied as he was, Barry crawled into his icy
blankets, but with a warmer feeling in his heart than he had known
since he joined the battalion. But before he had gone to sleep,
there came into his mind a thought that brought him up wide awake. He
had quite forgotten all about his duty as chaplain. "What a chance
you had there," insisted his chaplain's conscience, "for a word that
would really hearten your men. This is their first night in France.
To-morrow they march up to danger and death. What a chance! And you
missed it."
Barry was too weary to discuss the matter further, but as he fell
asleep he said to himself, "At any rate, the boys are feeling a lot
better," and in spite of his sense of failure, that thought brought
him no small comfort.
"I think," said Barry, to the M. O., "I really ought to ride down
to the R. A. M. C. hospital, and tell them how the boys enjoyed the
coffee last night." His face was slightly flushed, but the flush
might have been due to the fact that he had been busily engaged in
tying up the thongs of his bed-roll, an awkward job at times.
"Sure thing," agreed the M. O. heartily. "Indeed it's absolutely
essential, and say, old chap, you might tell her how I enjoyed my
coffee. She will be glad to hear about me."
Barry heaved his bed-roll at the doctor and departed.
At the R. A. M. C. Hospital the Officer Commanding, to whom he had
sent in his card, gave him a cordial greeting.
"I am glad to know you, sir. We have quite a lot of your chaps
here now and then, and fine fellows they seem to be. We expect a
hospital train this morning, and I understand there are some
Canadians among them. Rather a bad go a few days ago at St. Eloi.
Heavy casualty list. Clearing stations all crowded, and so they are
sending a lot down the line."
"Canadians?" asked Barry, thinking of his father. "You have not
heard what unit, sir?"
"No, we only get the numbers and the character of the casualties
and that sort of thing. Well, I must be off. Would you care to look
around?"
"Thank you, no. We are also on the march. I simply came to tell
you how very greatly our men appreciated your help last night."
"Oh, that's perfectly all right. Glad the sergeant had sense
enough to do the right thing."
Barry hesitated.
"May I see--ah--the sergeant?"
"The sergeant? Why, certainly, but it's not necessary at all."
The sergeant was called and duly thanked. The R. A. M. C. officer
was obviously anxious to be rid of his visitor and to get off to his
duty.
Still Barry lingered.
"There was also a young lady, sir, last night," he said at length.
"A young lady?"
"Sister Vincent, sir," interjected the sergeant. "She ran them up
to the camp in her car, sir. The ambulances and cars were all under
orders."
"Ah! Ran you up to the camp, eh?"
"Yes, she ran us up with the biscuits and coffee. It was awfully
kind of her."
"Ah!--Um!--Very good! Very good! Sergeant, call her," said the
O. C. abruptly.
"I'm afraid she'd be asleep now, sir. She was on night duty, sir."
"Oh, then," said Barry, "please don't disturb her. I wouldn't
think of it. If you will be kind enough, sir, to convey the thanks
of the men and of myself to her."
"Surely, surely! Well, I really must be going. Goodbye! Good
luck!"
He turned to his motor car. "I won't forget, sir," he said to
Barry. "Oh, I'll be sure to tell her," he added with a significant
smile.
As Barry was mounting his horse, the strains of the battalion band
were heard floating down the street. He drew up his horse beside the
entrance and waited. Down the winding hill they came, tall, lean,
hard-looking men, striding with the free, easy swing of the men of the
foothills. Barry felt his heart fill with pride in his comrades.
"By Jove," he said to himself, "the boys are all right."
"Fine body of men, sir," said the sergeant, who with his comrades
had gathered about the gateway.
"Not too bad, eh, sergeant?" said Barry, with modest pride.
"Sir," said the sergeant in a low voice, "the young lady is up at
the window to your left."
"Sergeant, you're a brick! Thank you," said Barry. He turned in
his saddle, and saw above him a window filled with smiling nurses
looking down at the marching column, and among them his friend of the
night before. Her face was turned away from him, and her eyes were
upon the column, eagerly searching the ranks of the marching men.
"Sergeant," said Barry, "your Commanding Officer is a very busy
man, and has a great many things to occupy his attention. Don't you
think it is quite possible that that message of mine might escape his
memory, and don't you think it would be really more satisfactory if I
could deliver that message in person?"
The sergeant tilted his hat over one eye, and scratched his head.
"Well, sir, the Commanding Officer does 'ave a lot of things to
think about, and though he doesn't often forget, he might. Besides, I
really think the young lady would like to know just how the coffee
went."
"Sergeant, you are a man of discernment. I'll just wait here until
the battalion passes."
He moved his horse a few steps out from the gateway, and swung him
around so that he stood facing the window. The movement caught the
attention of the V. A. D. in the window. She glanced down, saw him,
and, leaning far out, waved her hand in eager greeting and with a
smile of warm friendliness.
He had only time to wave his hand in reply, when the head of the
column drew opposite the gateway, forcing him to turn his back to the
window and stand at salute.
The Commanding Officer acknowledged the salute, glanced up at the
window, waved his hand to the group of nurses there gathered, then
glanced back at Barry, with a smile full of meaning, and rode on.
After the band had passed the entrance, it ceased playing, and the
men, catching sight of Barry and the smiling group at the window
above him, broke softly into a rather suggestive music hall ditty, at
that time popular with the soldiers:
"Hello! Hello! Who's your lady friend; Who's the little blossom
by your side; I saw you, with a girl or two, Oh! Oh! Oh! Oh! I'm
surprised at you."
Down the length of the column the refrain passed, gradually gaining
in strength and volume, until by the time the rear came opposite the
entrance, the men were shouting with wide open throats:
"Oh! Oh! Oh! Oh! I'm surprised at you,"
with a growing emphasis and meaning upon every successive "Oh!"
Barry's face was aflame and his heart hot with furious indignation.
She was not that kind of a girl. She would be humiliated before her
associates. He glanced up at the window but she was gone. The
battalion marched on but Barry still remained, his eyes following the
swinging column, his face still flaming, and his heart hot with
indignation.
"Good morning, Captain Dunbar!"
He swung off his horse, and there smiling at him with warm
friendliness was the little V. A. D.
"I'm awfully sorry," began Barry, thinking of the impudent song of
his comrades. "I mean I'm very glad to see you. I just ran in to
tell you how splendidly the coffee went last night. There are a
hundred fellows marching along there that are fine and fit just
because of your kindness, and I'm here to give you their thanks."
Barry felt that he was cutting a rather poor figure. His words
came haltingly and stumblingly. The suggestive music hall ditty was
still in his mind.
"What a splendid band you have," she said, "and how splendidly the
men sing."
"Sing!" cried Barry indignantly. "Oh, yes, they do sing rather
well, don't they?" he added, greatly relieved. "I have only a
minute," he added hurriedly, "but I wanted to see you again, and I
wonder if I may drop you a little note now and then, just to--well,
hang it all--just to keep in touch with you. I don't want you to
quite forget me."
"Oh, I won't forget you," she said. The brown eyes looked straight
at him. "You see, after all, my uncle knows you so well. Indeed, he
told me about you. You see, we really are friends, in a way, aren't
we?"
"We are indeed, and you are awfully good. Goodbye!"
"Goodbye," she said, "and if I leave here soon, I promise to let
you know."
And Barry rode away, his heart in such a turmoil as he had never
known. In his ears lingered the music of that soft voice, and his
eyes saw a bewildering complexity of dancing ringlets and lustrous
glances, until he drew up at the rear of the column and found himself
riding once more beside his friend, the M. O.
"Congratulations, old man," said the doctor. "She's a blossom, all
right. Cheer up; you may find her bending over your white face some
day, holding your hand, or smoothing your brow, in the approved V. A.
D. manner."
"Oh, shut up, doc," said Barry with quite unusual curtness. "She's
not that kind of a girl."
"Ah, who knows!" said the doctor. "Who knows!"
At the railway station, the battalion was halted, awaiting the
making up of their train, the departure of which was delayed by the
incoming hospital train from up the line. They had not long to wait.
"Here she is, boys!" called out a soldier. And into the station
slowly rolled that hospital train, with its freight of wounded men,
mutilated, maimed, broken. Its windows were crowded with faces,
white as their swathings, worn, spent, deep-lined, from which looked
forth eyes, indifferent, staring, but undaunted and indomitable.
Gradually, with stately movement, as befitted its noble burden, the
train came to rest immediately opposite the battalion. With grave,
fascinated, horror-stricken faces the men of the battalion stood
rigid and voiceless gazing at that deeply moving spectacle. Before
their eyes were being paraded the tragic, pathetic remnants of a
gallant regiment, which but a few weeks before had stood where they
now stood, vital with life, tingling with courage. At their
country's bidding they had ascended that Holy Mount of Sacrifice, to
offer upon the altar of the world's freedom their bodies as a living
sacrifice unto God, holy and acceptable. Now, their offering being
made, they were being borne back helpless, bruised, shattered but
unconquered and eternally glorious.
Silently the two companies gazed at each other across the
intervening space. Then from the window of the train a soldier
thrust a bandaged head and bandaged arm.
"Hello there, Canada!" he cried, waving the arm. Instantly, as if
he had touched a hidden spring, from the battalion's thousand throats
there broke a roar of cheers that seemed to rock the rafters of the
station building.
Again, again, and yet again! As if they could never exhaust the
burden of their swelling emotions, they roared forth their cheers,
waving caps and rifles high in the air, while down their cheeks
poured, unheeded and unhindered, a rain of tears.
"Canada! Canada! Canada!" they cried. "Oh, you Canadians!
Alberta! Alberta!"
Feebly came the answering cheers, awkwardly waved the bandaged
hands and arms.
Then the battalion broke ranks and flinging rifles and kitbags to
the ground, they rushed across the tracks, eager to bring their
tribute of pride and love to their brothers from their own country,
far across the sea.
"Malcolm! Hello, Malcolm!" cried a voice from a window of the
train, as the noise had somewhat subsided. "Hey, Malcolm, here you
are!" cried a wounded man, raising himself from his cot to the
window.
Malcolm Innes turned, scanned the train, then rushed across the
tracks to the window and clung fast to it.
It was his brother, Ewen.
"Is it yourself, Ewen, and are you hurted bad?" cried the boy, all
unconscious of his breaking voice and falling tears. They clung
together for some little time in silence.
"Are you much hurted, Ewen? Tell me the God's truth," again said
Malcolm.
"Not much," said Ewen. "True as death, I'm tellin' you. My arm is
broke, that's all. We had a bad time of it, but, man, we gave them
hell, you bet. Oh, it was great!"
Then again the silence fell between them. There seemed to be
nothing to say.
"Here, stand back there! You must get back, you know, men!"
An N. C. O. of the R. A. M. C. tried to push Malcolm back from the
window.
"Here, you go to hell," cried Malcolm fiercely. "It's my brother
I've got."
The N. C. O., widely experienced in these tragic scenes, hesitated
a moment. An officer, coming up behind him, with a single glance
took in the situation.
"My boy," he said kindly, placing his hand on Malcolm's arm, "we
want to get these poor chaps as soon as possible where they will be
comfortable."
Malcolm sprang back at once, saluting.
"Yes, sir," he said. "Certainly, sir." And backing across the
tracks, stood looking across at the window from which his brother,
wearied with his effort, had disappeared.
Meantime the R. A. M. C. were busy with their work. With
marvellous rapidity and speed the train was unloaded of its pathetic
freight, the carrying cases into ambulances and the walking cases into
cars and wagons.
"Good-bye, Mac," called a voice as a car was driving off. It was
Ewen again. The wounded man spoke to the driver, who immediately
pulled up and swung over to the platform where Malcolm was standing.
"Oh, are you sure, Ewen, you are goin' to be all right? Man, you
look awful white."
"All right, Mac. You bet I will. It's only my arm," said Ewen,
his brave, bright words in pathetic contrast to his white face.
At this point Barry came rushing along.
"Why, Ewen! My poor fellow!" he cried, throwing his arm about the
wounded man's shoulder. "What is it?"
"My arm, sir," said the boy, adding some words in a low tone. "But
I'm all right," he said brightly. "You'll write my mother, sir, and
tell her? You'll know what to say."
"Surely I will. You'll be all right, old boy, God bless you! Good
luck, Ewen!"
Then leaning over the boy, he added in a low voice, "Remember you
are not all alone. God is with you. You won't forget that!"
"I won't, sir. I know it well," said Ewen earnestly.
Most of the stretcher cases had been hurried away. Only a few of
the more seriously wounded remained. As Barry turned away from the
car, he saw the medical officer and sergeant major approaching him.
"A terrible business," said Barry, in a horror-stricken voice.
"Splendid chaps. How plucky they are!"
The M. O. made no reply, but coming close to Barry, he put his arm
through his, the sergeant major taking him by the other arm.
"I say, Barry, old chap," said the M. O. in a grave voice, calling
him for the first time by his first name. "There is some one here
that you know well."
"Some one I know," said Barry, standing still and looking from one
to the other.
"Ay, sir. Some one we all know and greatly respect," replied the
sergeant major.
"Not--not--oh, not my father!"
The M. O. nodded.
"Bad, doctor? Not dying, doctor?" His face was white even in
spite of his tan. His hands closed about the doctor's arm in a grip
that reached to the bone.
"No, not dying, Barry, but in a bad way, I fear."
"Take me," muttered Barry, in a dazed way, and they moved together
rapidly across the platform.
"Wait a moment, doctor," said Barry, breathing hard.
They stood still, a silent and sympathetic group of soldiers about
them. Barry turned from them, walked a few steps, his clasped hands
writhing before him, then stood with his face uplifted to the sky for
a few moments.
"All right, doctor, I'll follow," he said, coming quietly back.
"Will he know me?"
"Sure thing, sir," said the sergeant major cheerily. "He was
asking for you."
On a stretcher, waiting to be lifted into the ambulance, he found
his father, lying white and still.
"Dad!" cried Barry, dropping to his knees beside him. He put his
arms around him on the stretcher, and kissed him on both cheeks and
on the lips. They all drew back from the stretcher and turned their
backs upon the two.
"Barry, my boy. Thank the good God! I feared I would not see you.
It's all right now. Everything is all right now. I can't put my
arms around you, boy. I haven't any left."
Barry's shudder shook the stretcher.
"Dad, dad, oh, dad!" he whispered, over and over again.
"It's all right," whispered his father. "We must not forget we're
soldiers. Help me to keep up, boy. I'm not very strong."
That pitiful word did for Barry what nothing else could do. He
lifted his head, stood up and drew a deep breath.
"Sure thing, dad," he said, in a clear, steady voice. "I mustn't
keep you."
He motioned to the bearers. Then suddenly recollecting that his
duty would call him away from his father, he turned to the M. O., an
agony of supplication in his voice.
"Oh, doctor, must I leave him here?" he asked in a low tone.
Just then an orderly came running up to him, and, saluting, said:
"Sir, the Commanding Officer says you are to remain behind with
your father--till--till--"
"Until you are sent for," said the M. O. "I will see to that."
"Where's the Commanding Officer?" cried Barry, starting forward.
"He has gone off somewheres, sir. He was sorry he couldn't come
himself, but he was called away. He sent that message to you."
"Doctor, will you remember to thank the Commanding Officer for
me?" he said briefly, and turned to follow his father into the
ambulance, which he discovered to be in charge of his friend, the
sergeant of the R. A. M. C.
At the hospital he was received with every mark of solicitous care.
He was made to feel that he was among friends.
"How long, doctor?" he asked, after the doctor had finished his
examination.
"Not long, I'm afraid. A few hours, perhaps a day. He will not
suffer though," said the doctor. "But," he added, taking Barry by
the arm, "he is very weak, remember, and must not be excited."
"I know, doctor," said Barry, quietly. "I won't worry him."
Through the morning Barry sat by his father's cot, giving him,
under the directions of the nurse, such stimulants as he needed, now
and then speaking a quiet, cheery word.
Often his father opened his eyes and smiled at him.
"Good to see you there, my boy. That was my only grief. I feared
I might not see you again. Thank the good God that he allowed me to
see you."
"He is good, dad, isn't He? Good to me; good to us both."
"Yes, He is good," said his father, and fell asleep. For almost
two hours he slept, a sleep of exhaustion, due to the terrific strain
of the past forty-eight hours, and woke refreshed, calm and strong.
"You are a lot better, dad," said Barry. "I believe you are going
to pull through, eh!"
"A lot better, Barry," said his father, "but, my boy, we are
soldiers, you and I. I shall not be long, but remember, we are
soldiers."
"All right, dad. I'll try to play the game."
"That's the word, Barry. We must play the game, and by God's grace
we will, you and I--our last game together."
Through the afternoon they talked, between intervals of sleep,
resolved each to help the other in playing to the end, in the manner
of British soldiers, that last, great game.
They talked, of course, of home and their happy days together,
going far back into the earlier years of struggle on the ranch.
"Hard days, Barry, they were, but your mother never failed me.
Wonderful courage she had, and if we were all right, you and I,
Barry, she was always happy. Do you remember her?"
"Yes, dad, quite well. I remember her smiling always."
"Smiling, my God! Smiling through those days. Yes, that's the way
she played the game, and that's the only way, boy."
"Yes, dad," said Barry, and his smile was brighter than ever, but
his knuckles showed white where he gripped the chair.
The nurse came and went, wondering at their bright faces and their
cheery voices. They kept their minds upon the old happy days. They
recalled their canoe trips, their hunting experiences, dwelling mostly
upon the humorous incidents, playing the game. Of the war they spoke
little; not at all of what was to be after--the past, the golden,
happy past, rich in love and in comradeship, that was their one theme.
As night fell, the father grew weary, and his periods of sleep grew
longer, but ever as he woke he found his son's face smiling down upon
him.
"Good boy, Barry," he said once, with an understanding look and an
answering smile. "Don't try too hard, my boy."
"It's all right, dad. I assure you it's all right. You know it
is."
"I know, I know, my boy," he said, and fell asleep again.
As the midnight hour drew on, Barry's head, from sheer weariness,
sunk upon his breast. In his sleep he became aware of some one near
him. He sat up, dazed and stupid from his exhaustion and his grief,
and found a nurse at his side.
"Take this," she said softly. "You will need it." She set a tray
at his side.
"Oh, thank you, no!" he said. "I can't eat. I can't touch
anything."
"You need it," said the nurse. "You must take it, for his sake,
you know. He will need you."
Her voice aroused him. He glanced at her face.
"Oh, it's you!" he cried.
It was the little V. A. D.
"Don't rise," she said, putting her hand on his shoulder, and
pointing to his father. "Drink this first." She handed him an
eggnog. "Now take your tea." There was a quiet authority about her
that compelled obedience. He ate in silence while she stood beside
him. He was too weary and too sick at heart to talk, but he gradually
became aware that the overpowering sense of loneliness that had been
with him all day was gone.
When he had finished his slight meal, he whispered to her:
"I wish I could thank you, but I can't. I did need it. You have
helped me greatly."
"You are better now," she said softly. "It's very, very hard for
you, so far from home, and from all your friends."
"There is no one else," said Barry simply. "We have no one but
just ourselves."
At this point his father opened his eyes bright and very wide-
awake.
The V. A. D. began to gather up the tea things. Barry put out his
hand and touched her arm.
"Dad, this is your night nurse. She was very kind to me last
night, and again to-night. This is Miss Vincent."
The brightness of the V. A. D.'s smile outshone his own.
"I'm not a real nurse," she said. "I'm only a V. A. D., you know.
They use me to wash the floors and dishes, and for all sorts of odd
jobs. To-night they are shorthanded, and have put me on this duty."
While she was speaking, she continued to smile, a smile of radiant
cheer and courage.
The wounded man listened gravely to her, his eyes searching her
face, her eyes, her very soul, it seemed to her. In spite of her
experience and her self-control, she felt her face flushing under his
searching gaze.
"My dear," he said at length, "I am glad to meet you. You are a
good and brave girl, I know." His eyes fell upon the black band upon
her arm. "I see you are wearing the badge of heroism. My dear,
pardon me, you have the same look--Barry, she has your dear mother's
look, not so beautiful--you will forgive me, my dear--but the same
look. She thinks of others and she has courage to suffer. My dear, I
cannot take your hands in mine,"--he glanced with a pathetic smile at
his bandaged arms, but with a swift movement of indescribable grace
the girl stooped and kissed him on the forehead.
"Barry," he said, turning to his son, "that was a fine courtesy. I
count it an honour to have known you, Miss Vincent."
He paused a moment or two, his searching eyes still upon her face.
"You will befriend my boy, after--after--"
"I will try my best, sir," said the girl, the colour deepening in
her cheeks the while. "Good night, sir," she said. "I shall be near
at hand if I am wanted."
"Barry," said his father, after the girl had gone, "that is a very
charming and a very superior young lady, one you will be glad to
know."
"Yes, dad, I am sure she is," said Barry, and then he told his
father of the events of the previous night.
For some moments after he had finished his father lay with his eyes
shut, and quite still, and Barry, thinking he slept, sat watching,
his eyes intent upon the face he loved best in all the world.
But his father was not asleep.
"Yes, Barry," he said, "she is like your dear mother, and now," he
added hurriedly, "I hope you will not think I am taking a liberty--"
"Oh, dad, I implore you!" said Barry.
"Barry, I would like to speak to you about your work."
Barry shook his head sadly.
"I'm not much good, dad," he said, "but I'm not going to quit," he
added quickly, noting a shadow on his father's face.
"Barry, I'm going to say something to you which I do hope will not
hurt you. I know the common soldier better than you do, boy. Our
Canadian soldiers do not like to be rebuked, criticised or even
watched too closely. Forgive me this, my boy."
"Oh, dad, please tell me all that is in your heart!"
"Thank you, Barry. They don't like the chaplain to be a censor
over their words."
"I loathe it," said Barry passionately.
"Believe me, they are good chaps in their hearts. They swear and
all that, but that is merely a habit or a mere expression of high
emotion. You ought to hear them as they 'go over.' Barry, let all
that pass and remember that these boys are giving their lives-- their
lives, Barry, for right, for conscience, and ultimately, though it may
be unconsciously, for God. Barry, a man that is giving his life for
God may say what he likes. Don't be too hard on them, but recall to
mind, Barry, that when they go up the line they feel terribly lonely
and terribly afraid, and that is a truly awful experience."
He paused a moment or two, and then lowered his voice and
continued: "Barry, you won't be ashamed of me. I was terribly afraid,
myself."
Barry choked back a convulsive sob.
"You, dad, you!" He laughed scornfully.
"I didn't run, Barry, thank God! But the boys--my boys--they are
only lads, many of them--lonely and afraid--and they must go on. They
must go on. Oh, Barry, in that hour they need some one to go with
them. They need God."
His son was listening with his heart in his eyes. He was getting a
new view of the soldier and of the soldier's needs.
"Unhappily," continued his father, "God is at best a shadowy being,
to many of them a stranger, to some a terror. Barry," he said, "they
need some one to tell them the truth about God. It's not fair to God,
you know." Here again his father paused and then said very humbly:
"I think I may say, Barry, I know God now, as I did not before. And
you helped me, boy, to know him."
"Oh, dad," cried Barry, passionately. "Not I! I don't know Him at
all!"
"Let me tell you how you helped me, Barry. Before I went up the
last time, I wanted--"
He paused abruptly, his face working and his lip quivering.
"Forgive me, my boy. I'm a little weak."
A few moments of silence and then he continued quietly:
"I wanted you, Barry."
The boy's hands were writhing under his knees, but his face and
eyes were quite steady.
"I was terribly lonely. I thought of that strange, dear bond that
held us together, and then like a flash out of the sky came those
great words: 'Like as a father pitieth his children,' and oh, boy,
boy! It came to me then that as I feel toward my boy God feels
toward me. Barry, listen--" His voice fell to a whisper. "I am
God's son, as you are mine. There was no more fear, and I was not
nearly so lonely. Tell the boys--tell the boys the truth about God."
He lay a long time silent, with his eyes closed, and as Barry
watched he saw two tears fall down the white cheeks. It was to him a
terrible sight. Never, not even at his mother's grave, had he seen
his father's tears. It was more than he could endure. He put his
face down beside his father's on the pillow.
"Dad, I understand," he whispered. "I know now what God is like.
He is like you, dad. He gave himself for us, as you, dad, have given
yourself all these years for me."
He was sobbing, but very quietly.
"Forgive me, dad; I'm not crying. I'm just thinking about God and
you. Oh, dad, you are both wonderful! Wonderful!"
"Barry, my boy, tell them. Don't worry yourself about them. Just
tell them about God. He is responsible for them, not you."
"Oh, I will, dad; I promise you I will. I've been all wrong, but
I'll tell them. I'll tell them."
"Thank God, my boy," said his father, with a deep sigh. "Now I'm
tired. Say 'Our Father.'"
Together they whispered those greatest of words in human speech,
those words that have bound heaven to earth in yearning and in hope
for these two thousand years.
"Don't move, Barry," whispered his father. "I like you there."
With their faces thus together they fell asleep.
Barry was awakened by his father's voice, clear and strong.
"Are you there, Barry?" it said.
"Here, dad, right here!"
"Good boy. Good boy. You won't leave me, Barry. I mean you don't
need to go?"
"No, dad, I'll never leave you."
"Good boy," again murmured his father softly. "Always a good boy,
always, always--"
He was breathing heavily, long deep breaths.
"Lift me up, Barry," he said.
Barry sat on the bed, put his arm around his father's shoulders,
and lifted him up.
"That's better--hold me closer, Barry-- You won't hurt me-- Oh,
it's good--to feel--your arms--strong arms--Barry."
"You made them strong, dad," said Barry, in a clear, steady voice.
The father nestled his head upon his son's shoulder.
"Barry," he said in the low tone of one giving a confidence, "don't
ever forget--to thank God--for these eighteen years--together-- You
saved me--from despair--eighteen years ago--when she went away-- you
know--and you have been--all the world to me--my son--"
"And you to me, dad," said his son in the same steady tone.
"I've tried all my life--to make you know--how I love you--but
somehow I couldn't--"
"But I knew, dad," said Barry. "All my life I have known."
"Really?" asked his father. "I--wonder--I don't think--you quite
know-- Ah--my boy--my boy-- You don't--know--you--can't. Barry,"
he said, "I think--I'm going out--I'm going--out--no, in--your
word--my boy--in--eh--Barry?"
"Yes, dad," said his son. "Going in. The inner circle, you know."
"The--inner--circle--" echoed his father. "Warmth--light--love--
Now--I think--I'll sleep-- Good night--Barry-- Oh--my boy,--you--
don't quite--know-- Kiss me--Barry--"
Barry kissed him on the lips.
"So-- Good--night--"
A deep breath he took; another--Barry waited for the next, but
there was not another.
He laid his father down and looked into his quiet face, touched
even now with the noble stateliness of death. He put his arms about
the unresponsive form, and his face to the cheek still warm.
"Dad, oh, dad," he whispered. "Do you know--do you know-- Oh,
God, tell him how I love him. Tell him! Tell him! I never could."
The little V. A. D. came softly and stood looking from a distance.
Then coming to the bedside, she laid her hand upon the head and then
the heart of the dead man. Then she drew back, and beckoning to an
orderly, they placed a screen about the cot. She let her eyes rest
for a moment or two upon the kneeling boy, then went softly away.
Death was to her an all too familiar thing. She had often seen it
unmoved, but to-night, as she walked away, the brown eyes could not
hold their tears.
Barry was standing beside his father's grave, in a little plot in
the Boulogne cemetery set apart for British officers. They had, one
by one, gone away and left him until, alone, he stood looking down on
the simple wooden cross on which were recorded the name, age, and unit
of the soldier with the date of his death, and underneath the simple
legend, eloquent of heroic sacrifice, "Died of wounds received in
action."
Throughout the simple, beautiful burial service he had not been
acutely conscious of grief. Even now he wondered that he could shed
no tears. Rather did an exultant emotion fill his soul as he looked
around upon the little British plot, with its rows of crosses, and he
was chiefly conscious of a solemn, tender pride that he was permitted
to share that glorious offering which his Empire was making for the
saving of the world. But, in this moment, as he stood there alone
close to his father's grave, and surrounded by those examples of high
courage and devotion, he became aware of a mighty change wrought in
him during these last three days. He had experienced a veritable
emancipation of soul. He was as if he had been born anew.
The old sense of failure in his work, the feeling of unfitness for
it, and the old dread of it, had been lifted out of his soul, and not
only was he a new man, but he felt himself to be charged with a new
mission, because he had a new message for his men. No longer did he
conceive himself as a moral policeman or religious censor, whose main
duty it was to stand in judgment over the faults and sins of the men
of his battalion. No more would the burden of his message be a stern
denunciation of these faults and sins. Standing there to-day, he
could only wonder at his former blindness and stupidity and pride.
"Who am I," he said in bitter self-humiliation, "that I should
judge my comrades? How little I knew myself."
"A man of God," his superintendent had said in his last letter to
him. Yes, truly a man of God! A MAN not God! A MAN not to sit in
God's place in judgment upon his fellow sinners, but to show them
God, their Father.
Barry thought of the frequent rebukes he had administered to the
officers and men for what he considered to be their sins. He groaned
aloud.
"God will forgive me, I know," he said. "But will they?"
He tried to recall what the burden of his message to his battalion
had been during these past months, but to him there came no clear and
distinct memory of aught but warnings and denunciations, with
reference to what he judged to be faulty in their conduct. To-day it
seemed to him both sad and terrible.
How had he so failed and so misconceived the Master's plain
teaching? He moved among sinners all His days, not with
denunciations in His heart or voice, but only with pity and love.
"Be not anxious," He had said. "Consider the birds of the air.
Not one of them falleth to the ground without your Father. How much
more precious are you than the birds."
What a message for men going up to face the terrors and perils of
the front line. "Be not anxious!"
"I was afraid," his father had said to him. That to him was
inconceivable. That that gallant spirit should know terror seemed to
him impossible. Yet even he had said, "I was afraid." And for the
loneliness, what a message he now had. In their loneliness men cried
out for the presence of a friend, and the Master had said:
"When ye pray, pray to your Father. Your Father knoweth. When ye
pray, say, 'Our Father'!" And he had missed all this. What a mess
he had made of his work! How sadly misread his Master's teaching and
misinterpreted his Master's spirit!
Barry looked down upon the grave at his feet.
"But you knew, dad, you knew!" he whispered.
For the first time since he had become a chaplain, he thought of
his work with gratitude and eagerness. He longed to see his men
again. He had something to tell them. It was this: that God to them
was like their fathers, their mothers, their brothers, their friends;
only infinitely more loving, and without their faults.
With his head high and his feet light upon the earth, he returned
to the R. A. M. C. Hospital, where he found Harry Hobbs, with his
handbag and a letter from his O. C.
"Take a few days off," said the O. C. "We all sympathise with you.
We miss you and shall be glad to see you, but take a few days now for
yourself."
Barry was greatly touched, but he had only one desire now, and that
was to return to his unit. His batman brought him also an order from
the Assistant Director of Chaplain Service bidding him report at the
earliest moment.
At Headquarters he learned that the A. D. C. S. had been in
Boulogne, but had gone to Etaples, some thirty or forty miles
distant, to visit the large hospitals there. He determined that
to-morrow he would go to Etaples and report, after which he would
proceed to his battalion.
That evening, he visited the men in the hospital, coming upon many
Canadians whose joy in seeing a chaplain from their own country
touched Barry to the heart. He took their messages which he promised
to transmit to their folks at home, and left with them something of
the serene and exultant peace that filled his own soul.
From Ewen Innes and others of the Wapiti draft, he learned
something of his father's work and place in their battalion. Soldiers
are not eloquent in speech, but mostly in silence. Their words halted
when they came to speak of their sergeant major's soldierly
qualities,--for his father had become the sergeant major of the
battalion--his patience, his skill, his courage.
"He knew his job, sir," said one of them. "He was always onto it."
"It was his care of his men that we thought most of," said Ewen,
who continued to relate incidents that had come under his own
observation of this characteristic, tears the while flowing down his
cheeks.
"He never thought of himself, sir. It was our comfort first. He
was far more than our sergeant major. He watched us like a father;
that's what he did."
As Barry listened to the soldiers telling of his father in broken
words, and with flowing tears, he almost wondered at them for their
tears and wondered at himself that he had none. Tears seemed to be
so much out of place in telling such a tale as that.
The train for Etaples leaving at an unearthly hour in the morning,
Barry went to take farewell of the V. A. D. the night before.
"That is an awfully early hour," she said, "and, oh, such a
wretched train." There was in her voice an almost maternal
solicitude for his comfort.
"That's nothing," said Barry. "When I see you here at your
unending work, it makes me feel more and more like a slacker."
"Wait for me here a moment," she said, and hurried away to return
shortly in such a glow of excitement as even her wonted calm and
self-restraint could not quite hide.
"I'm going to drive you to Etaples to-morrow in my car. I know the
matron and some of the nurses in the American hospital there."
"You don't mean it," said Barry, "but are you sure it's not a
terrible bore for you? I am much afraid that I have been a nuisance
to you, and you have been so very, very good to me."
"A bore!" she cried, and the brown eyes were wide open in surprise.
"A bore, and you a Canadian! Why, you are one of my brothers'
friends, and besides you seem to me a friend of our family. My uncle
Howard, you know, told me all about you. Besides," she added in a
voice of great gentleness, "you remember, I promised."
Barry caught her hand.
"I wish I could tell you all I feel about it, but somehow I can't
get the words."
She allowed her hand to remain in his for a moment or two; then
withdrawing it, said hurriedly, with a slight colour showing in her
cheeks:
"I think I understand." Then changing her tone abruptly, and
dropping into the business-like manner of a V. A. D., she said, "So,
we'll go to-morrow. It will he a splendid run, if the day is fine.
We had better start by nine o'clock to give us a long day." Then, as
if forgetting she was a V. A. D., she added with a little catch in her
voice, "Oh, I shall love it!"
The day proved to be fine,--one of those golden days of spring that
have given to the land its name of "sunny France." It was a day for
life and youth and hope. A day on which war seemed more than ever a
cruel outrage upon humanity. But across the sunniest days, across the
shining face of France, and across their spirits, too, the war cast
its black shadow. They both, however, seemed to have resolved that
for that day at least they would turn their eyes from that shadow and
let them rest only where the sun was shining.
The V. A. D. with her mind intent upon her wheel could only
contribute, as her share in the conversation, descriptive and
somewhat desultory comments upon points of interest along the way.
Barry, because it harmonised with his mood, talked about his father
and all their years together but ever without obtrusion of his grief.
The experiences of the past three days, which they had shared, seemed
to have established between them a sense of mutual confidence and
comradeship such as in ordinary circumstances would have demanded
years of companionship to effect. This sense of sympathy and of
perfect understanding on the part of the girl at his side, together
with the fascinating charm of her beauty, and her sweetness, was to
Barry's stricken heart like a healing balm to an aching wound.
They were in sight of Etaples before Barry imagined they could have
made more than half the journey.
"Etaples, so soon! It cannot be!"
"But it is," said the girl, throwing a bright smile at him, "and
that's the hospital, on the hill yonder, where the flag is flying."
"Why," exclaimed Barry, "that's the American flag! What's the
American flag doing there?"
"It's flying over an American hospital," said the V. A. D. "I
think it's such a beautiful flag. In the breeze, it seems to me the
most beautiful of all the flags. The stripes seem to flow out from
the stars. Of course," she added hurriedly, "the Union Jack with all
its historic meaning and its mingled crosses, is splendidly glorious
and is more decorative, but I always think, when I see those floating
stripes, that the Americans have the most beautiful flag."
"I admit," said Barry, "it's a beautiful flag, but--well, I'm a
Britisher, I suppose, and see it with British eyes. But why is that
flag flying here in France? How do the authorities allow that? It's
a neutral flag--awfully neutral, too."
"I understand they have permission from the French authorities to
fly that flag over every American institution in France. And you
know," continued the girl with rising enthusiasm, "if they are
neutral, they have immensely helped us, too, haven't they?--in
munitions and that sort of thing."
"That's true enough," agreed Barry, "and it's all the more
wonderful when you think of the millions of Germans that they have in
their country. I heard a very fine thing, not long ago, from a friend
of mine. A Pittsburgh oil man about to close a deal, with a
traveller, with millions in it, suddenly discovered that his oil was
to go to the Germans. At once the deal was off, and, though the price
was considerably raised, there was, in his own words, 'Nothing
'doing!' 'No stuff of mine,' he said, 'shall go to help an enemy of
the Anglo-Saxon race.' That's the way I believe the real Americans
feel."
"This is a wonderful hospital," said the V. A. D. "Whenever I see
it, I somehow feel my heart grow warm to the American people for the
splendid way in which they have helped poor France, for, you know, in
the first months of the war, the French hospitals were perfectly
ghastly."
"I know, I know!" cried Barry. "And the Canadians, too, have
chipped in a bit. We have a Canadian hospital in Paris, for the
French, and others are being organised."
They turned in at the gate and found themselves in a beautiful
quadrangle, set out with grass plots and flowers and cement walks.
The building itself, an ancient royal palace, had been enlarged by
means of sun-parlours and porches which gave it an air of wonderful
cheeriness and brightness.
"I will run in and see if any of my friends are about," said the
V. A. D. "Wait here for me. Unless you care to come in," she added.
"No, I will wait here. I don't just feel like meeting strangers
but, if there are Canadians in the hospital, I should like to see
them. And perhaps you can discover where my chief can be found, if
you don't mind."
Hardly had she passed within the door, when another car came
swiftly to the gate and drew up a little in front of Barry's. A girl
leaped from the wheel and with a spring in her step, which spoke of a
bounding vitality, ran up the steps.
What thought caught her it is difficult to say, but on the topmost
step she spun around and looked straight into Barry's eyes.
"Paula!" he shouted, and was out of the car and at the foot of the
steps, with hand outstretched, when, with a single touch of her foot
to the steps, she was at him, with both hands reaching for his.
"Barry, oh, Barry! It can't be you!" she panted. Her face went
red, then white, then red again. "Oh, it's better than a drink to
see you. Whence, how, why, whither? Oh, never mind answering," she
went on. "It's enough to see you."
A step behind her diverted her attention from Barry. Barry ran up
the steps, and taking the V. A. D. by the hand, led her down.
"I want you to meet a friend of mine," he said and introduced
Paula.
Paula's eyes, keen as a knife-point, were upon the V. A. D.'s face.
"I'm glad to know you," she said frankly, offering her hand.
"Principally," she added, with a little laugh, "because you know
Barry."
The V. A. D. bowed with the slight reserve characteristic of her,
and took Paula's hand.
"I, too, am pleased," she said, "to meet a friend of Captain
Dunbar." Then she added with increased cordiality, "and I'm glad to
meet an American in France. I know your matron, and some of the
nurses."
"Good!" cried Paula. "Now, then, you'll both of you take lunch
with me."
The V. A. D. demurred.
"Of course you will," cried Paula. "Oh, Barry, I'm just ready to
die from seeing you again. Come along!" she cried, impulsively,
catching the V. A. D. by the arm. "Come along and park your
buzzwagon here beside mine."
She ran to her car, sprang in and whirled it into place before the
V. A. D. had hers well started.
Barry waited where they had left him. The sudden appearing of
Paula had stirred within him depths of feeling that almost
overpowered him. His mind was far away in Athabasca, once more he
was seeing the dark pool, the swiftly flowing water, the campfire,
and his father bending over it. His heart was quivering as if a hand
had been rudely thrust into a raw wound in it.
The V. A. D. held Paula a few moments beside her car, speaking
quickly and earnestly. When they rejoined Barry, Paula's eyes were
soft with unshed tears, and her voice was very gentle.
"I know, Barry," she said. "Miss Vincent just told me. Oh, what
terrible changes this war brings to us all. We see so many sad
things here every day. It's terribly sad for you, Barry."
"Yes, it is sad, Paula, and it is going to be lonely. You have
brought back to me that bright day on the Athabasca. But," he added
earnestly, "after all, in this war everything personal is so small.
Besides, he was so splendid, you know, and the boys told me he played
the game up there right to the end. So I'm not going to shame him; at
least, I'm trying not to."
But bright as was Barry's smile, Paula caught the quivering of his
lips, and turned quickly away from him.
After a moment or two of silence, she cried, with her old
impulsiveness, "Now you will both lunch with me. I'm the
quartermaster of this outfit, and have a small parlour of my own. We
shall have a lovely, cosy time, just Miss Vincent, you and myself
together."
"But," replied the V. A. D., "I have just arranged with the matron
to lunch with her."
"Oh, rubbish! I'll cut that out, all right. What's the use of
being quartermaster if I can't arrange a lunch party to suit myself?"
Still the V. A. D. demurred. With her, breaking an engagement for
lunch was a serious affair--was indeed taking a liberty which no
English girl would think of doing.
"Oh, that's nonsense!" cried Paula. "I'll make it perfectly all
right. Look here," she cried, wheeling upon the V. A. D., "you
Britishers are so terribly correct. I'll show you a little
shirtsleeve diplomacy. Besides, if you don't come in on this you can
have the matron, and I'll take Barry," she said with a threatening
smile. "Watch me!" she added, as she ran away.
"What a splendid girl!" said the V. A. D. "And that captivating
American way she has. Perfectly ripping, I call it. I do hope we
shall be friends."
In a short time Paula came rushing back into the room, announcing
triumphantly that arrangements had been made according to her
programme, with the matron in hearty accord.
"And she sends her love," she said to the V. A. D. "She would not
have you on any account miss this party. She is desperately grieved
that she cannot accept my invitation to join us. Of course, I knew
the old dear couldn't. And we are to meet her afterwards."
The little lunch party was, on the whole, a success. To the
conversation Paula contributed the larger part, Barry doing his best
to second her. But in spite of his heroic efforts, his mind would
escape him, far away to the sunny Athabasca plains, and the gleaming
river and the smooth slipping canoe, and then with swift transition to
the little British plot in the cemetery at Boulogne.
At such times, Paula, reading his face, would momentarily falter in
her gay talk, only to begin again with renewed vivacity. On one
topic, however, she had no difficulty in holding Barry's attention.
It was when she told of the organising and despatching of the
American Red Cross units to France, and more especially of her own
unit, organised and financed by her father.
"I am awfully sorry he is not here to-day. He would have loved to
have seen you again, Barry."
"And I to have seen him," said Barry. "He is a big man, and it is
fine of him to do this thing. It's just like the big, generous-
hearted Americans--they are so unstinted in their sympathies, and
they back them up for all they are worth."
"And how efficient they are," added the V. A. D. in warm
admiration. "This hospital, you know," turning to Barry, "is perfectly
wonderful. Its equipment! Its appliances! I have often heard our O.
C. speak in the most rapturous envy of the Etaples American Red Cross
unit."
"And why should not it be?" cried Paula. "It's a question of money
after all. We are not at war. We put in a few little hospitals here
in France. We have more money thrown at us than we can use. And you
talk about efficiency," she added, turning to the V. A. D. "Good Lord!
My pater has just come back from London, where he was rubbering
around with lords and dukes and things in a disgustingly un-American
way I told him, and now he raves from morning until night over the
efficiency of the British. He's been allowed to see some of their
munition works, you know. I simply had to declaim the American
Declaration of Independence to him three times a day to revive his
drooping Democratic sentiments, and I had to sew Old Glory on to his
pajamas so that he might dream proper American dreams. No, to tell
you the truth," here Paula's voice took a deeper note, "every last
American of us here in France is hot with humiliation and rage at his
country's attitude,--monkeying with those baby-killing, woman-raping
devils."
As she ended, her voice shook with passion, her cheeks were pale,
and in her eyes shone two bright tears. Impulsively the V. A. D.
rose from her place, ran around to Paula, and putting her arm around
her neck, said:
"Oh, I do thank you, and I love you for your words," while Barry
stood at attention, as if in the presence of his superior officer. "I
salute you," he said with grave earnestness. "You worthily represent
your brave and generous people."
"Oh, darn it all!" cried Paula, brushing away her tears. "I'm a
fool, but you don't know how we Americans feel--real Americans, I
mean, not the yellow hyphenated breed."
After lunch, Barry went to look up his chief, the assistant
director of chaplain service, while Paula took charge of the V. A.
D., saying:
"Run away, Barry, and see your Brass Hat. I'll show Miss Vincent
how a quartermaster's department of a real hospital should be run."
His hour with the A. D. C. S. was a most stimulating experience for
Barry. He found himself at once in touch with not an official
thinking in terms of military regulations and etiquette, but a
soldier and a man. For the A. D. C. S. was both. Through all the
terrible days at Ypres, where the Canadians, in that welter of gas
and fire and blood, had won their imperishable fame as fighting men,
he had been with them, sharing their dangers and ministering to their
wants with his brother officers of the fighting line. Physically an
unimpressive figure, small and slight, yet he seemed charged with
concentrated energy waiting release.
As Barry listened to his words coming forth in snappy, jerking
phrases, he was fascinated by the bulldog jaw and piercing eyes of
the little man. In brief, comprehensive, vigorous sentences, he set
forth his ideals for the chaplain service in the Canadian army.
"Three things," he said, "I tell my men, should mark the Canadian
chaplain service. The first, Unity--unity among themselves, unity
with the other departments of the army. Two words describe our
chaplains--Christian and Canadians. I am an Anglican myself, but on
this side of the channel there are no Anglican, no Presbyterian, no
Methodist chaplains, only Christian and Canadian chaplains. I have
had to fight for this with high officials both in the army and in the
church. I have won out, and while I'm here this will be maintained.
The second thing is Spirituality. The Chaplain must be a Christian
man, living in touch with the Divine--alive toward God. Third,
Humanity. He must be 'touched with the feeling of our infirmity,'
sharing the experiences of the men, getting to know their feelings,
their fears, their loneliness, their misery, their anxieties, and God
knows they have their anxieties for themselves and for their folks at
home."
As Barry listened, he heard again his father's voice. "They need
you. They are afraid. They are lonely. They need God."
"And remember," said the A. D. C. S., as he rose to close the
interview, "that I am at your back. If you have any difficulty, let
me know. If you are wrong, I promise to tell you. If you are right,
I'll back you up. Now, let us go and look over the hospital. There
are some of our fellows there. If you feel like saying anything in
the convalescent ward, all right, but don't let it worry you."
As they went through the wards, Barry could not but notice how the
faces of the patients brightened as his chief approached, and how
their eyes followed him after he had passed.
They moved slowly through those long corridors, sanctified by the
sufferings and griefs and hidden tears of homesick and homelonging
men, to many of whom it seemed that the best of life was past.
When they had gone the length of the convalescent ward, the A. D.
C. S. turned and, after getting permission of the medical
superintendent, briefly introduced Barry to the wounded men, as "a
man from the wild and woolly Canadian west, on his way up the line,
and therefore competent to tell us about the war, and especially when
it will end."
Beside them stood a piano, and on it lay a violin in its open case.
Barry took up the violin, fingered its strings in an absent-minded
way, and said:
"I don't know anything about the war, men, but I do know when it
will end, and that is when we lick those Huns good and plenty, as our
American friends would say," bowing to the doctor at his side. "I'm an
awfully poor speaker, boys," he continued in a confidential tone, "but
I can make this thing talk a bit."
Without further preface he began to play. He had not held a
violin in his hands since he had played with his father at home.
Unconsciously his fingers wandered into the familiar notes of
Handel's Largo. He found the violin to possess an exceptionally rich
and pure quality of tone.
As he began to play, a door opened behind them, admitting Paula,
the V. A. D. and two or three young doctors, who took their places in
the corner about the piano.
"Do you know this?" whispered Paula to the V. A. D., as she caught
the strains of the Largo.
"Yes. I used to play it with my brother."
"Go to it, then," said Paula.
But the V. A. D. hesitated.
"Go on! Look at the boys, and look at his face."
The V. A. D. glanced about the room at the lines of pale and
patient faces, which, in spite of the marks of pain, were so
pathetically and resolutely bright. Then she glanced at Barry's
face. He had forgotten all about his surroundings, and his face was
illumined with the light from those hidden lamps that burn deep in the
soul of genius, a light enriched and warmed by the glow of a heart in
sympathy with its kind.
In obedience to Paula's command and a little push upon her
shoulder, the V. A. D. sat down at the piano and touched the notes
softly, feeling for the key, then fell in with the violin.
At the first note, Barry turned sharply about and as she found her
key and began to follow, he stepped back to her side. Immediately,
from his instrument, there seemed to flow a richer, fuller stream of
melody. From the solemn and stately harmonies of the Largo, he passed
to those old familiar airs, that never die and never lose their power
over the human heart--"Annie Laurie" and "Ben Bolt," and thence to a
rollicking French chanson, which rather bowled over his accompanist,
but only for the first time though, for she had the rare gift of
improvisation, and sympathetic accompaniment.
Then with a full arm bowing, he swept them into the fiercely
majestic strains of the "Marseillaise," bringing the blue-coated
orderlies about the door, and such patients as could stand, and the
group about the piano to rigid attention. From the "Marseillaise" it
was easy to pass into the noble simplicity of his own national song,
"Oh, Canada!" where again his accompanist was quite able to follow,
and thence to the Empire's National Anthem, which had for a hundred
years or more lifted to their feet British soldiers and sailors the
world over.
As he drew his bow over the last chord, Paula stepped to his side,
and whispered in his ear:
"Where's America in this thing?"
Without an instant's break in the music, he dropped into a
whimsical and really humorous rendering of "Yankee Doodle." Quickly
the V. A. D. moved from the stool, caught Paula and thrust her into
the vacant place. Then together the violin and piano rattled into a
fantastic and brilliant variation of that famous and trifling air.
Again, with a sudden change of mood, Barry swung into that old song
of the homesick plantation negro, "The Suwanee River"--a simple enough
air, but under the manipulations of a master lending itself to an
interpretation of the deep and tender emotions which in that room and
in that company of French, British, Canadian, American folk were
throbbing in a common longing for the old home and the "old folks at
home." Before he had played the air once through, the grey-haired
American doctor was openly wiping his eyes, and his colleagues looking
away from each other, ashamed of the tears that did them only honour.
Paula's flushed face and flashing eyes were eloquent of her deep
emotion, while at her side the V. A. D. stood quiet, controlled, but
with a glow of tender feeling shining in her face and in her soft
brown eyes.
Not long did Barry linger amid those deeps of emotion, but
straightening his figure to its full height, and throwing up his
head, he, in full octaves, played the opening bars of what has come
to be known as America's national anthem, "The Star Spangled Banner."
Instantly the A. D. C. S., the orderlies about the door, the
wounded French, British and Canadian soldiers that could stand,
sprang to attention and so remained while the violin, with its piano
accompaniment, throbbed forth the sonorous chords. With the last bar,
Barry dropped his bow to his side, but held the violin still at his
chin. Not one of that company moved, but stood with their eyes
fastened upon his face. After a moment's pause, he quietly lifted his
bow again, and on the silence, still throbbing to the strains of that
triumphant martial air, there stole out pure, sweet, as from some
ethereal source, the long drawn, trembling notes of that old sacred
melody, which, sounding over men and women in their hours of terror
and anguish and despair, has lifted them to peace and comfort and
hope--"Nearer, My God, to Thee."
The tension which had held the company was relaxed, the wounded
men sank to their seats, the A. D. C. S. removed his hat, which,
according to military regulations, he had worn to this moment. On all
sides, heads dropped in an attitude of reverence, and so continued
until Barry had drawn the last deep, vibrating note to a close.
When he had laid his violin in its case, the old American doctor
came forward, with his hand extended.
"Let me, as an American and a Christian, thank you, sir," he said.
One by one the group of Americans came to shake hands with him, the
last being Paula, who held his hand a moment and said softly:
"Thank you, Barry. I believe all that stuff now. I have learned
it here."
The last of all to come was the V. A. D. Shyly, with a smile
radiant through her tears, she offered her hand, saying: "Thank you!
He would have liked that, I know."
"Captain Dunbar, where's your own violin?" The abrupt tone of the
A. D. C. S. startled them all.
"At home, sir. I didn't think a chaplain would need one."
"Whose violin in this?" asked the A. D. C. S. in his brusque
manner.
"I rather think this is mine," said one of the doctors.
"Will you sell it? I'll buy it from you, at any price you say. I
want it for him."
"You can't buy it, colonel," said the doctor. "It's his now. I
never knew it had all that heart stuff in it."
He took up the violin, and handed it to Barry. But Barry drew back
in astonishment. Then the old doctor came forward.
"No, Travis," he said, "we'll do better than that. What did your
fiddle cost?"
"A hundred and fifty dollars, I think."
"Travis, this company of Americans, representing their country here
in France, as a token of their sympathy with the allies and their
sacred cause, and of gratitude to you, sir," bowing to Barry, "will
buy this instrument and present it to this young man, on condition
that he repeat in similar circumstances the service he has rendered
this afternoon. Am I right?" he asked, looking about him.
"You bet you are! Right you are!" said the doctors.
"Oh, doctor, you are a dear old thing!" exclaimed Paula.
Barry stood holding the instrument in his hand, unable to find his
voice. The A. D. C. S. came to his aid.
"In the name of my chaplain, and in the name of thousands of
Canadian soldiers to whom I promise you he will bring the blessing
that he has brought us this afternoon, I thank you for this very
beautiful and very characteristic American act."
"Well," said the old doctor, "I don't know how you folks feel, but
I feel as if I had been to church."
"Now, sir," said the A. D. C. S. to Barry, in his military tone, "I
am organising a company of musicians who will go through our camps
and help the boys as you have helped us to-day. I would like you to
be one of them. What do you say?"
"Oh, sir," exclaimed Barry hastily, laying the violin upon the
piano and standing back from it, "don't make that an order, sir. I
want to stay with my men."
His face was quivering with deep emotion. The A. D. C. S. looked
into the quivering face.
"All right, Dunbar," he said, with a little laugh, and putting his
hand on Barry's shoulder. "I guess you are all right."
"Some boy! What?" said the American doctor. "Here I think you had
better take your fiddle along," handing Barry the violin. "It
doesn't belong to any one in this bunch."
The burst of laughter that followed, all out of proportion to the
humour of the remark, revealed the tensity of the strain through
which they had passed.
Through the little town of Etaples they drove together in almost
complete silence, until they had emerged into the country, lying
spread out about them in all the tender beauty of the soft spring
evening. As the car moved through the sweet silence of the open
fields, the V. A. D. said softly:
"Oh, Captain Dunbar, I--"
"My name is Barry," he said gently.
A quick flush came into the beautiful face and a soft light to the
brown eyes, as she answered:
"And mine is Phyllis." Then she hurried to add, "I was going to
say that you helped me this afternoon as nothing has since my dear
brothers went."
"Thank you, Phyllis. What you have been to me through all these
days, I wish I could tell, but I can't find words."
Then they rode together in silence that was more eloquent than any
words of theirs could be. At length Barry burst forth
enthusiastically:
"Those Americans! What a beautiful and gracious act of kindness
that was to me."
"Oh," replied Phyllis, with answering enthusiasm, "aren't they
fine! That was perfectly ripping of them."
Barry's return to the battalion was like a coming home. In the
mess there was no demonstration of sympathy with him in his loss, but
the officers took occasion to drop in casually with an interesting bit
of news, seeking to express, more or less awkwardly, by their presence
what they found it impossible to express in actual words.
It was to Barry an experience as new as it was delightful.
Hitherto, as far as any real fellowship was concerned he had lived a
life of comparative isolation among his fellow officers, and while
they were careful to preserve the conventions and courtesies imposed
by their mutual relations, he had ever been made to feel that in that
circle he was an outsider.
Among the officers who came to call upon him, none surprised him
more than did Major Bayne. While that officer had always been
careful to maintain an attitude toward him, at once correct and
civil, there had never been any approach to friendliness. As a
matter of fact, Major Bayne was too entirely occupied with his own
interests to have either the leisure or the inclination for anything
but a casual concern for the chaplain and his affairs. That was not to
be wondered at. Life in the army, notwithstanding all its loyalties
and its fine unselfishnesses, is, in some of its phases, a brutally
self-centred form of existence. Its routine consists in the continual
performance of "duties" under an authority ruthless in its exactions
and relentless in its penalties. Only after months of experience of
its iron rigidity does the civilian, accustomed as he is to
self-determination, with a somewhat easygoing regard for the
conventions of his community, arrive at the state of mind in which
unconsciously and as a matter of second nature he estimates the
quality of the most trivial act by its relation to the standard set by
the Military High Command. Like a spectre does that solemn,
impalpable, often perfectly unreasonable omniscient and omnipotent
entity lurk in the shadow ready to reach out a clutching hand, and for
some infraction of regulations, wilful or inadvertent, hale the
luckless and shivering defaulter to judgment. It therefore behooves a
man to take heed to himself and to his ways, for, with the best
intention, he may discover that he has been guilty of an infraction,
not of a regulation found in K. R. O., with which he has painfully
made himself familiar and which he has diligently exercised himself to
observe, but of one of those seventeen hundred and sixty-nine
"instructions" and "informations" which from time to time have
appeared in those sacred writings known as Army, Divisional, Brigade,
or Battalion Orders.
In consequence, an officer with a conscience toward his duty, or an
ambition for promotion, gives himself so completely to the business
of "watching his step" that only by a definite exercise of his
altruistic faculties can he indulge himself in the commendable
civilian luxury of caring for his neighbour.
And so it came about that Major Bayne, possessing in a large
measure the quality of "canniness" characteristic of his race--a
quality which for the benefit of the uninitiated Saxon it may be
necessary to define as being a judicious blending of shrewdness and
caution,--and being as well, again after the manner of his race,
ambitious for his own advancement, and, furthermore, being a man of
conscience, had been so entirely engrossed in the absorbing business
of "watching his step" that he had paid slight heed to the affairs of
any other officer, and least of all to those of the chaplain, whose
functions in the battalion he had regarded, it must be confessed, as
more or less formal, if not merely decorative.
But, in spite of all this, in the major the biggest thing was his
heart, which, however, true to his race type again, he kept stored in
the deepest recesses of his system. To "touch" the major's "heart"
was an operation of more than ordinary difficulty. It was that very
thing, however, which the letter to the battalion Commanding Officer
from the A. D. C. S. had achieved. The effect of this letter upon the
members of the mess, and most especially upon the junior major in
regard to their relation to their chaplain, was revolutionary. Hence
the major's visit to Barry upon the evening of his return.
It was with an unusually cordial handshake that he greeted the
chaplain.
"We are glad to have you back with us, Captain Dunbar," he said.
"We missed you, and we have discovered that we need you. Things have
been moving while you were away. This battalion is undergoing a
transformation. The O. C. is tightening down the screws of
discipline. He sees, and we all are beginning to see, that we are up
against a different proposition from what we had imagined, and right
here, Captain Dunbar, I want to say for myself, and I believe for the
rest of the boys, that we have not given you a square deal."
His attitude and his words astounded Barry.
"Don't say that, major," he said, in a voice husky with emotion.
"Don't say that. I have been all wrong. I am not going to talk
about it, but I am awfully glad to get a second chance."
"If you need a second chance, Pilot," said the major, for the first
time using the friendly western sobriquet, "believe me, you'll get
it."
The major sat down, pulled out his pipe, and began to impart some
interesting bits of news.
"Things are moving rather swiftly with us these days. There are
many changes taking place. Duff has gone permanently to the
transport, and is in the way for a captaincy. Hopeton has gone for a
machine gun course. Sally is to be company commander in his place.
Booth takes charge of the bombers. Your friend, Sergeant Knight, is
slated for a commission. He is doing awfully well with the
signallers, and, by the way, there is something I want to show you
to-morrow, something quite unique and remarkable, our new instructor
in bayonet fighting. Do you know we were rather stuck on our bayonet
fighting, but he has made the boys feel that they didn't know anything
about bayonet fighting, or, for that matter, about anything else. I
think you will enjoy him. The boys are all up on their toes. There
is nothing like the scream of a live shell 'coming in' to speed up the
training."
When the major had departed, he left Barry in a maze of wonder and
gratitude. That the battalion were glad to have him back, that all
the old feeling of latent hostility of which he had been conscious
was gone, and that they felt that they really needed him stirred in
his heart a profound sense of humility and gratitude.
Late as it was he felt he must go out for a stroll about the camp
just to see the men and give them greeting.
Wherever he went he was greeted with a new respect and a new
cordiality. It was as if he had passed through some mystic
initiation ceremony and had been admitted into a magic circle of
comradeship with the common soldier, than which no privilege is more
dearly coveted by the officers, from the colonel himself to the
youngest sub, and which is indeed, in the last analysis, the sine qua
non of effective leadership.
As Barry was passing the sergeants' mess-room the door opened and
there came out Sergeant Major McFetteridge himself, with two others
of the mess.
"Good evening, sergeant major," said Barry quietly passing on his
way.
"Good evening, sir," said the sergeant major with his usual stiff
salute. "Oh, it's you, sir," he cried as the light fell upon Barry's
face. "We're glad to see you back, sir."
"Thank you, sergeant major," replied Barry, offering his hand, "and
I'm glad to be back with you all again."
"Thank you, sir. I assure you we're glad to have you. Won't you
come in, sir? The boys will all want to see you," and so saying the
sergeant major threw wide open the door.
Nowhere is class privilege more appreciated and more jealously
guarded than in the sergeants' mess. It is the most enclusive of all
military circles. Realising this, Barry was glad to accept the
invitation. The hut was filled with sergeants in easy deshabille,
smoking, lounging, playing various games.
"The chaplain, boys," announced the sergeant major, and instantly
every man was on his feet, and at attention.
"It's all right, boys," said the sergeant major. "The chaplain has
just dropped in for a minute for a friendly call, and we want you to
feel, sir," he added, for the sergeant major loved a little
ceremonial, "that we respectfully sympathise with you in your loss,
and that we consider ourselves honoured by your presence here
tonight."
Barry was so deeply touched by the unexpected warmth of their
welcome, and by the reference to his recent sorrow, that he could not
trust himself to speak. Without a word he passed around the group,
shaking hands with each man in turn. By the time he had finished the
round, he had his voice in control, and said:
"Sergeant major, this is very kind of you. I thank you for this
welcome, and I am grateful for your sympathy." He hesitated a moment
or two; then, as if he heard his father's voice, "Tell them! Tell
them! They don't know Him," he added: "And, sergeant major, if you
will allow me, I have something I want to say to all the men when I
get a chance. I cannot say it all to-night to the sergeants, but this
much I would like to say: That since I saw you, I believe I have got
a new idea of my work in the battalion. I got it from a sergeant major
whose men told me that he was a fine soldier and a brave man, and more
than that, that he was 'like a father to them.' That, sergeant major,
was my own father. From him I learned that my job was not to jump on
men for their faults, but to help men to know God, who is our Father
in Heaven, and, men, I think if I can do this, I shall count myself
happy, for He is worth knowing, and we all need Him."
His words gripped them hard. Then he added, "Before I say 'good
night,' may I have the privilege of leading you to Him in words that
you have all learned at your mother's knee?" Then simply he spoke the
words of that immortal prayer, the men joining in low and reverent
voices.
After the prayer, he quietly said, "Good night!" and was passing
out of the hut. He had not got to the door, however, when the
sergeant major's voice arrested him.
"Sir, on behalf of the sergeants, I thank you for coming in and I
thank you for your words. You have done us all good."
The following morning, a sergeant from a neighbouring battalion,
visiting the transport lines, and observing Barry passing along with
Major Bayne on the battalion parade ground, took occasion to remark:
"That is your padre, ain't it? He checks you fellows up rather
short, don't he?"
"Yes, that is our padre, or Pilot, as we like to call him," was
Sergeant Mackay's answer, "but I want to tell you that he can just
check us up until our heads touch the crupper, and it's nobody's
damned business but our own."
"Well, you needn't get so blasted hot over it. I ain't said
nothing against your padre that I haven't heard from your own
fellows."
"That's all right, sergeant. That was before we got to the war.
I'm not huntin' for any trouble with anybody, but if any one wants to
start up anything with any one, sergeant, in this battalion, he knows
how to do it."
And this came to be recognised as an article in the creed of the
sergeant's mess.
The bayonet-fighting squad were engaged in some preliminary drill
of the more ordinary kind when Major Bayne and the chaplain arrived
on the ground.
"We'll just watch the little beggar a while from here and go up
later," said the major.
As Barry watched the drill sergeant on his job, it seemed to him
that he had never seen a soldier work before. In figure, in pose, in
action there was a perfection about him that awakened at once
admiration and envy. Below the average height, yet not
insignificant, erect, without exaggeration, precise in movement
without angularity, swift in action without haste, he was indeed a
joy to behold.
"Now, did you ever see anything like that?" enquired the major,
after their eyes had followed the evolutions of the drill sergeant
for a time.
"Never," said Barry, "nor do I hope to again. He is a--I was going
to say dream, but he's no dream. He's much too wide awake for that.
He's a poem; that's what he is."
Back and forth, about and around, stepped the little drill
sergeant, a finished example of precise, graceful movement. He was
explaining in clean cut, and evidently memorised speech the details
of the movements he wished executed, but through his more formal and
memorised vocabulary his native cockney would occasionally erupt,
adding vastly to the pungency and picturesqueness of his speech.
"He knows we are here all right," said the major, "but he would not
let on if it were King George himself. I'll bet you a month's pay,
though, that we can't get one foot beyond what he considers the
saluting point before he comes to attention, and as for his salute,
there is nothing like it in the whole Canadian army. Talk about a
poem, his salute has Shakespeare faded. Now he's going to move them
off. Watch and listen!"
"Ye-a-ou-w!" came the long-drawn cry, fiercely threatening,
representing in English speech the word "squad." Then followed an
expletive, "Yun!" which for explosive quality made a rifle crack seem
a drawl, and which appeared to release in the men a hidden spring
drawn to its utmost tension. The slack and sagging line leaped into a
rigid unit, of breathless, motionless humanity.
"Aw-e-ou-aw!" a prolonged vocalisation, expressive of an infinite
and gentle pity, and interpreted to the initiated ear to mean "As you
were!" released the rigid line to its former sagging state.
"N-a-w then," said the voice in a semi-undertone, slow and tense,
"this ain't no arter dinner bloomin' siester. A little snap--ple--
ease!" The last word in a sharply rising inflection, tightening up
the spring again for the explosive "Ye-a-ou-w--yun!" (Squad
attention.) "Aw-e-ou-r--yun!!! Aw-e-ou-r--yun!!!"
Without warning came the commands, repeating "As you were!"
"Attention!" He walked up and down before the rigid line, looking
them over and remarking casually,
"Might be a little worse," adding as an afterthought, "per-haps!"
After which, with a sharp right turn, and a quick march, he himself
leading with a step of clean-cut, easy grace, he moved them to the
bayonet-fighting ground.
"By Jove!" breathed Barry. "Did you ever imagine anything like
that?"
"The result of ten years in the regular army," said the major.
"It's almost worth it," answered Barry.
Arriving at the bayonet-fighting ground, the little sergeant major
put the squad through their manual as if they had been recruits, to a
running comment of biting pleasantries. After bringing them to
attention, he walked slowly down the line, then back again, and
remarked after due deliberation:
"I have seen worse--not often--" Then, in a tone of resignation,
he gave the order:
"Stan-a-yeh!!!"
The men "stood at ease," and then "stood easy."
"Now, then," said the major, "we'll steal in on him, if we can."
They moved forward toward the little sergeant major, who remained
studying the opposite horizon in calm abstraction until their toes
had reached a certain line, when, like the crack of a whip, there
came once more the long-drawn cry with its explosive termination:
"Ye-a-ou-w!--Yun!!!" with the result that the line was again thrown
into instantaneous, breathless and motionless rigidity.
Toward the advancing officers the sergeant major threw himself into
a salute with one smooth, unbroken movement of indescribable grace
and finish.
"Good morning, sergeant major," said Major Bayne. "Captain Dunbar,
this is Sergeant Major Hackett."
Again came the salute, with a barely perceptible diminution of
snap, as befitted a less formal occasion.
"Sergeant major," said Barry, "I would give a great deal to be able
to do that."
"Wot's that, sir?" enquired the sergeant major.
"That salute of yours."
"Quite easy wen you knaow 'ow!" permitting himself a slight smile.
"You are doing some bayonet-fighting, I see, sergeant major," said
Major Bayne.
"Yes, sir, goin' to do a bit, sir," replied the sergeant major.
"Very well, carry on!"
And the sergeant major "carried on," putting into his work and
into his every movement and utterance an unbelievable amount of
concentrated and even vicious energy.
On the bayonet-fighting ground, the first line of the enemy was
represented by sacks stuffed with straw, hung upon a frame, the
second by stuffed sacks deposited on the parapet of a trench. In
bayonet-fighting the three points demanding special emphasis are the
"guarding" of the enemy's attack, a swift bayonet thrust and an
equally swift recovery, each operation, whether in case of a living
enemy or in the stuffed effigy, being attended with considerable
difficulty. Barry was much interested in the psychological element
introduced into the exercises by the drill master.
"You must halways keep in mind that the henemy is before you. It's
important that you should visualise your foe. The henemy is hever
before you. Anything be-ind a British soldier won't trouble anybody,
and you are to remember that hit's either you or 'im."
In moments of rapid action the sergeant major evidently had
difficulty with his aspirates.
"The suspended sacks before you represent the henemy. You are to
treat 'em so."
Having got his line within striking distance of the swinging sacks,
the exercise was directed by two commands, "On guard!" and "Point!"
the first of which was supposed to knock off the enemy's thrust, and
the second to drive the bayonet home into his vitals, after which,
without command, there must be a swift recovery.
"Naw then, "Hn-gah!--Pint!!!"
For some moments, in response to these orders, the squad practised
"guarding" and "pointing," not, however, to the complete satisfaction
of the sergeant.
"Naw, then, number five, stick it hinto 'im. Ye ain't 'andin' a
lidy an unbreller!"
Another attempt by number five being still suggestive of the
amenities proper to a social function, the sergeant major stepped up
to the overgentle soldier.
"Naw, then," he said, "hobserve! There's my henemy. See 'is hugly
mug. Hn-gah! Pint!!!"
At the words of command, the sergeant major threw himself into his
guard and attacked with such appalling ferocity as must have
paralysed an ordinary foe, sending his bayonet clean through to his
guard, and recovering it with a clean, swift movement.
Having secured a fairly satisfactory thrust, the sergeant major
devoted his attention to the recovery of the bayonet.
"Fetch it hout!" he cried fiercely. "There's another man comin'.
Fetch it hout! Ye may fetch 'is spinial column with it. No matter,
'e won't need it."
The final act in this gruesome drama was the attack upon the second
line represented by the sacks lying upon the parapet of the trench
beyond. The completed action thus included the guard, thrust,
recovery, the leap forward past the swinging line of sacks, and a
second thrust at the figure prone upon the parapet, with a second
recovery of the weapon, this second recovery being effected by
stamping the foot upon the transfixed effigy, and jerking back the
bayonet with a violent upward movement.
This last recovery appeared to cause number five again some
difficulty.
"Now then, number five, put a little aight (hate) into it. Stamp
your bleedin' 'obnyles (hobnails) on his fice, and fetch it hout!
This wye!" As he took the rifle from number five, the sergeant
major's face seemed to be transformed into a living embodiment of
envenomed hate, his attack, thrust, recovery, gathering in intensity
until with unimaginable fury he leaped upon the prostrate figure,
drove his bayonet through to the hilt, stamped his hobnails upon the
transfixed enemy, jerked his weapon out, and stood quivering, ready
for any foe that dared to approach. The savage ferocity of his face,
the fierce energy in his every movement, culminating in that last
vicious leap and stamp, altogether constituted such a dramatic and
realistic representation of actual fighting that the whole line burst
into a very unsoldierly but very hearty applause, which, however, the
sergeant major immediately and sternly checked.
"What do you think of that?" enquired the major. "Isn't he a
scream?"
"He is perfectly magnificent," said Barry, "and, after all, he is
right in his psychology. There is no possibility of training men to
fight, without putting the 'aight into it!'"
The period of intensive training was drawing to a close. The
finishing touches in the various departments that had come to be
considered necessary in modern warfare had been given. With the
"putting on the lacquer" the fighting spirit of the men had been
sharpened to its keenest edge. They were all waiting impatiently for
the order to "go up." The motives underlying that ardour of spirit
varied with the temperament, disposition and education of the soldier.
There were those who were eager to "go up" to prove themselves in
that deadly struggle where their fellow Canadians had already won
their right to stand as comrades in arms with the most famous fighting
battalions of the British army. Others, again, there were in whose
heart burned a deep passion to get into grips with those hellish
fiends whose cruelties, practised upon defenceless women and children
in that very district where they were camped, and upon wounded
Canadians, had stirred Canada from Vancouver to Halifax with a desire
for revenge.
But, with the great majority there was little of the desire either
for military glory or for revenge. Their country had laid upon them
a duty for the discharge of which they had been preparing themselves
for many months, and that duty they were ready to perform. More than
that, they were eager to get at it and get done with it, no matter at
what cost. With all this, too, there was an underlying curiosity as
to what the thing would be like "up there." Far down below all their
feelings there lay an unanswered interrogation which no man dared to
put to his comrade, and which indeed few men put to themselves. That
interrogation was: "How shall I stand up under the test?"
The camp was overrun with rumours from returning battalions of the
appalling horrors of the front line. Ever since that fateful 22nd of
April, 1915, that day of tragedy and of glory for the Canadian army,
and for the Canadian people, the Ypres salient, the point of honour on
the western front from Dixmude to Verdun, had been given into the
keeping of the Canadian army. During those long and terrible months,
in the face of a continued bombardment and of successive
counter-attacks, with the line growing thinner, week by week, hacked
up by woefully inadequate artillery, the Canadian army had held on
with the grim tenacity of death itself. There was nothing that they
could do but hold on. To push the salient deeper into the enemy lines
would only emphasise the difficulty and danger of their position. The
role assigned them was that of simply holding steady with what
ultimate objective in view no one seemed to know.
Week by week, and month after month, the Canadian battalions had
moved up into the salient, had done their "tours," building up their
obliterated parapets, digging out their choked-up water- courses,
revetting their crumbling trenches, and rebuilding their flimsy
dugouts, and then returning to their reserve lines, always leaving
behind them in hastily dug graves over the parados of their trenches,
or in the little improvised cemeteries by Hooge, or Maple Copse or
Hill 60, a few more of their comrades, and ever sending down the line
their maimed and broken to be refitted for war or discharged again to
civilian life. It was altogether a ghastly business, a kind of
warfare calling for an endurance of the finest temper and a courage of
the highest quality.
From this grim and endless test of endurance, the Canadians had
discovered a form of relief known as a "trench raid," a special
development of trench warfare which later came to be adopted by their
comrades of the French and British armies. It was a form of sport,
grim enough, deadly enough, greatly enjoyed by the Canadian soldiers;
and the battalion which had successfully pulled off a trench raid
always returned to its lines in a state of high exaltation. They had
been able to give Fritz a little of what they had been receiving
during these weary months.
While the battalion waited with ever-growing impatience for the
order that would send them "up the line," a group of officers was
gathered in the senior major's hut for the purpose of studying in
detail some photographs, secured by our aircraft, of the enemy
trenches immediately opposite their own sector of the front line.
They had finished their study, and were engaged in the diverting and
pleasant exercise of ragging each other. The particular subject of
that discussion was their various sprinting abilities, and the
comparative usefulness of various kinds of funk-holes as a protection
against "J.J.s" (Jack Johnsons), "whizzbangs," or the uncertain and
wobbling "minniewafers."
Seldom had Barry found occasion to call upon Major Bustead, with
whom he had been unable to establish anything more than purely formal
relations. A message, however, from the orderly room to Lieutenant
Cameron, which he undertook to deliver, brought him to the senior
major's hut.
"Come in, padre," said the major, who of late had become more
genial, "and tell us the best kind of a funk-hole for a
'minniewafer.'"
"The deepest and the closest for me, major, I should say," said
Barry, "from what I have heard of those uncertain and wobbling
beasts."
"I understand that chaplains do not accompany their battalions to
the front line, but stay back at the casualty clearing stations,"
suggested the major. "Wise old birds, they are, too." The major had
an unpleasant laugh.
"I suppose they go where they are ordered, sir," replied Barry,
"but if you will excuse me, I have here a chit for Lieutenant
Cameron, sir, which has just come in," and Barry handed Cameron his
message.
"Will you allow me, sir?" said Cameron.
"Certainly, go on, read it," said the major.
Cameron read the message, and on his face there appeared a grave
and anxious look.
"It's from the casualty clearing station, sir. One of our chaps
from Edmonton is there dangerously wounded, and wants to see me. I'd
like to go, sir, if I might."
"Oh, certainly. I'll make it all right with the O. C. Get a horse
from the transport. Which casualty clearing station is it?"
Cameron looked at his message.
"Menin Mill, sir."
"Menin Mill! By gad, I thought it was Brandthoek, but Menin Mill,
good Lord, that's a different proposition. That's way beyond Ypres,
you know. Right up on the line. You can't take a horse there. Do
you think you ought to go up at all?"
"I think I should like to go, sir," replied Cameron. "I know the
chap well. Went to school and college with him."
"Then," said the major, "you had better hurry up and attach
yourself to one of the transports going in. You will barely be in
time."
"Thank you, sir," said Cameron, and left the room.
Barry went out with him. "Who is it, Cameron?" he said. "Do I
know him?"
"I don't know, sir, whether you do or not. It's young McPherson of
Edmonton, an awfully decent chap, and my very best friend."
"May I go up with you, Duncan? I know Colonel Tait and Captain
Gregg, who are at the Mill, I understand."
"I would be awfully glad if you would, but I hardly liked to ask
you. It hasn't the reputation of being a very healthy place, I
hear."
"All right, Cameron. I'm going up," said Barry.
Upon enquiry they found that they were too late for the transports,
and again the question arose as to whether, in view of the major's
order, they should make the attempt by themselves.
"It was not really an order, I think, sir," said Cameron. "It was
more in the way of a suggestion. I think I'll go. The note said,
'dangerously wounded,' and he sent for me."
"All right," said Barry, "we'll go on, and we'll almost certainly
pick up some one who will be able to direct us to the Mill."
Their road, which took them to Vlammertinghe, led through level
fields, lying waste and desolate with rank, overgrowing weeds. As
they approached that historic village, they saw on every hand the
cruel marks of war. On either side of the road were roofless and
shattered cottages, grown around with nettles and briars. Among
these ruins, as they found on a later day, were the old garden
flowers, pansies and daisies, bravely trying to hold their own. Among
the rank weeds was to be seen the half-hidden debris of broken farm
gear. Here and there stood the ruins of what had been a thrifty
homestead, with its stone-flagged courtyard, around which clustered
its stables. Now nettles and briars grew around the broken walls and
shattered, staring windows. At rare intervals, a great house
appeared, with pretentious gateway, and grass-grown drive winding up
between stately and mutilated trees. Over the whole countryside hung
a melancholy and weird desolation, cottages, homesteads, fields, the
very trees crying aloud to high heaven for pity and vengeance.
At Vlammertinghe, itself, the church tower still stood whole, but
the church itself was wrecked, as were most of the village shops and
dwellings. In the village was to be seen no living thing except some
soldiers, who in the broken cellars were making their bivouacs. The
village stood deserted of its inhabitants, ever since the terrific
onslaught of the Huns, on the 22nd of April, 1915, which had driven
them forth from their homes, a panic- stricken, terror-hunted crowd of
old men, women and little babes, while over them broke, with a
continuous and appalling roar, a pitiless rain of shells.
At the cross-roads stood a mounted officer, directing the traffic,
which here tended to congestion. As they entered the village, the
sentry halted them to enquire as to their bona fides. Having
satisfied him, they enquired their way to the Menin Mill.
"Menin!" The rising inflection of the sentry's voice expressed a
mild surprise. "The old Mill! Are you going there?"
"Yes," said Barry, answering his inflection. "Why not?"
"Well, sir, you know, it's rather a bad road. Warm bit of country
up there, but--" He shrugged his shoulders in quite a French manner
as if to say it was no business of his. "If you are going to Menin,
you keep this road straight through past Wipers past the Cloth Hall,
out by the Menin Gate. A hot place, that, sir. Then straight on,
taking the right incline for about a mile and a half. You will see a
big cemetery on your left. The Mill stands near a big school on your
right. But why not drop into the dressing station, here, sir, right
here in this old mill, which stands at the cross-roads? You may catch
an ambulance going straight up to the Mill."
"Thank you very much," said Barry. "We'll do that very thing."
"Good luck, sir," said the sentry, saluting.
They found an ambulance about to start, and asked for a lift.
"All right, sir," said the driver, "but you'd better step in and
ask the officer."
They passed into a large and high-vaulted stone building, which in
peace days had been a mill. The old-fashioned, massive machinery was
still standing intact. Obtaining permission from the officer, they
took their places beside the driver of the ambulance, and were soon on
their way.
It was already growing dark, but, although the surface of the stone
pave was frequently broken with shell-holes, the ambulance, dodging
round the holes, rushed without pause along at a high rate of speed.
"You don't use your lights?" asked Barry.
"No, not lately, sir," said the driver. "That's the newest order,"
he added in a tone of disgust.
The road lay between double rows of once noble trees, centuries
old, with the first delicate green of spring softening their bare
outlines. Now, splintered, twisted, broken, their wounds showing
white in the darkening light through the delicate green, they stood
silently eloquent of the terrific force of the H. E. shell.
As they went speeding along the shell-marked road they came upon a
huge trunk of a mighty elm, broken clear from its stump, lying
partially cross their track, which soldiers were already busy
clearing away. Without an instant's pause, the driver wheeled his
car off the 'pave', crashed through the broken treetops, and
continued on his way.
Barry looked upon the huge trunk with amazement.
"Did a single shell break that tree off like that?" he asked.
"You bet," was the reply, "and all these you see along here. It's
the great transport road for our front line, and the boches shell it
regularly. Here comes one now," he added, casually.
There was a soft woolly "whoof" far away, a high, thin whine, as
from a vicious insect overhead, with every fractional second coming
nearer and yet nearer, ever deepening in tone, ever increasing in
volume, until, like an express train, with an overwhelming sense of
speed and power, and with an appalling roar, it crashed upon them. In
the field on their left, there leaped fifty yards into the air a huge
mass of earth and smoke. Then a stunning detonation.
Insensibly Barry and Cameron both crouched down in the car, but the
driver held his wheel, without the apparent quiver of a muscle.
"There'll be three more, presently, I guess," he said, putting on
full speed.
His guess proved right. Again that distant woolly "whoof," the
long-drawn whine, deepening to a scream, the appalling roar and
crash, and a second shell fell in the road behind them.
"Two," said the driver coolly. "There will be a couple more."
Again and yet again, each time the terror growing deeper in their
souls, came the two other shells, but they fell far behind.
"Oh, Fritzie," remonstrated the driver, "that's rotten bad work.
You'll have to do better than that."
Again and again, in groups of four, the shells came roaring in, but
the car had passed out of that particular zone of danger, and sped
safely on its way.
"Do you have this sort of thing every night?" enquired Barry.
"Oh, no," cheerfully replied the driver. "Fritzie makes a lot
better practice than that, at times. Do you see this?" He put his
finger upon a triangular hole a few inches above his head. "I got
that last week. We don't mind so much going up, but it's rather
annoying when you're bringing down your load of wounded."
As they approached Ypres, the road became more and more congested,
until at length they had to thread their way between two continuous
streams of traffic up and down, consisting of marching battalions,
transports, artillery wagons, ambulances, with now and then a motor
or a big gun.
About a mile from the city, they came to a large red brick
building, with pretentious towers and surrounded by a high brick
wall.
"An asylum," explained the driver. "Now used as a dressing
station. We'll just run in for orders."
At what seemed to Barry reckless speed, he whirled in between the
brick posts, and turned into a courtyard, on one side of which he
parked his ambulance.
"Better come inside, sir," said the driver. "They sometimes throw
a few in here, seeing it's a hospital."
They passed down the wide stairs, the centre of which had been
converted into a gangway for the passage of wheeled stretchers, into
a large basement, with concrete floors and massive pillars, lit by
flaring gasjets. Along the sides of the outer room were rows of
wounded soldiers, their bandaged heads and arms no whiter than their
faces, a patient and pathetic group, waiting without complaint for an
ambulance to carry them down the line.
In an inner and operating room, Barry found two or three medical
officers, with assistants and orderlies, intent upon their work.
While waiting there for their driver, they heard overhead again that
ominous and terrifying whine, this time, however, not long drawn, but
coming in with terrific speed, and ending with a sharp and shattering
crash. Again and again and again, with hardly a second between, there
came the shells. It seemed to Barry as if every crash was fair upon
the roof of the building, but no man either of the medical attendants
or of the waiting wounded paid the slightest heed.
At length there came a crash that seemed to break within the very
room in which they were gathered. The lights flickered, some of them
went out, there was a sound as if a tower had crashed down upon the
roof. Dust and smoke filled the room.
"Light up that gas," said the Officer Commanding. An orderly
sprang to obey. The gasjets were once more lighted and the work went
on.
"Rather near, wasn't that one?" asked Barry of a wounded man at his
side.
"Yes," he replied casually, "they got a piece that time," and again
he sunk into apathetic silence.
In a few moments the driver had obtained his orders and was ready
to set forth.
"Better wait a bit," said the sergeant at the door, "until their
Evening Hate is over."
"Oh, that's all right," said the driver. "I guess Fritz is pretty
well through. They are rather crowded there at the mill, and I guess
we'll go on."
In his heart, Barry earnestly hoped that the sergeant would
interpose with a more definite command, but, inasmuch as the
bombardment had apparently ceased, and as if it were all in a day's
work, the driver, buttoning up his coat, said:
"We'll go, sir, if you are ready."
A few minutes' run brought them to the gate of the ruined city. As
the car felt its way through the ghostly town, Barry was only vaguely
conscious in the darkness of its ghostly skeletonlike ruins. Fifteen
minutes brought them to the Menin gate.
"Sounds rather hot out there," remarked the driver. "Well,
Fritzie, I guess we won't join your party this time. We prefer to
wait, if you don't mind, really."
He ran the car into the lee of the ramparts, by the side of the
gateway, waited there half an hour or so, until the "Evening Hate"
was past; then onward again to the Menin Mill.
They lifted the blanket covering the sandbagged entrance, passed
through a dark corridor and came into a cellar, lit by lanterns,
swinging from the roof, and by candles everywhere upon ledges or upon
improvised candlesticks.
No sooner had they come into the light, than Barry saw across the
room his friend, Dr. Gregg, his coat off, and his shirtsleeves rolled
to his elbows.
"Hello, Dunbar," said the doctor, coming forward. "I guess I won't
shake hands just now. Sit down. Won't you have a cup of coffee?
Jim," turning to an orderly, "give Captain Dunbar a cup of coffee."
Barry presented Cameron to his friend, and together they sat down
and waited. When the doctor was through with his patient, he came
and sat down with them.
"We came up to see a young chap named McPherson. I think you sent
a note down about him to-day."
"McPherson," said the doctor. "I don't remember, but I will see."
He turned to a desk and turning over the pages of a record,
apparently found the name, and returned to Barry.
"I am sorry to say that McPherson died this afternoon," he said.
"Dead," said Barry. He turned to Cameron. "I'm awfully sorry,
Duncan."
"Was there anybody with him?" he enquired of the doctor. "He was
Lieutenant Cameron's very close friend, and college companion."
"Oh, awfully sorry," replied the doctor. "Yes, I think Captain
Winter, the chaplain of the --th, was with him at the last. He's not
here just now. I can tell you where to get him. To-morrow is his day
here."
"Is--is--is his body still here?" enquired Cameron, after a few
moments' silence.
"Yes, it's in the next room. Do you want to see it? He was pretty
badly smashed up, I'm afraid."
"I think I should like to see him," said Cameron. "I know his
people, you see, and I would like to tell them that I saw him."
"Oh, all right," said the doctor. He called an orderly.
"Come this way, sir," said the orderly.
Together they followed the orderly into the next room, apparently a
storehouse for grain. There lying upon the floor they saw three
silent shapes, wrapped in grey blankets.
"This is Mcpherson, sir," said the orderly, looking at the card
attached to the blanket.
He stooped, drew down the blanket from the face and stepped back.
In civil life, both Barry and Cameron had seen the faces of the dead,
but only in the coffin, after having been prepared for burial by those
whose office it is to soften by their art death's grim austerities.
Cameron gave one swift glance at the shapeless, bloody mass, out of
which stared up at him wide-open glassy eyes.
"Oh, my God, my God!" he gasped, gripping Barry by the arm, and
staggering back as if he had received a blow. He turned to the door
as if to make his escape, but Barry, himself white and shaken, held
him firmly.
"Steady, old boy," he said. "Steady, Duncan!"
"Oh, let me go! Let me get out of here!"
"Duncan, there are a lot of wounded chaps out there."
The boy--he was only nineteen--was halted at the word, stood
motionless and then muttered:
"You are right, sir. I was forgetting."
"And, Duncan, remember," said Barry, in a quiet and solemn voice,
"there's more than that to McPherson. That fine young chap whom you
knew and loved is not that poor and battered piece of clay. Your
friend has escaped from death and all its horrors."
"Yes, yes, I know," whispered Cameron, still shaking. "We'll go
out now, sir. I'll be all right. I assure you I'm all right."
They passed out into the dressing-room again, where the wounded
were continuing to arrive. Cameron was for departing at once, but
Barry held him back, unwilling that the lad should be driven away
beaten and unnerved by what he had seen.
"I say, Duncan, let's see some of these boys. We can perhaps cheer
them up a bit. They need it badly enough, God knows."
"All right," muttered Cameron, sitting down upon a bench in the
shadow. They waited there till Dr. Gregg came along.
"Hello, Dunbar, you are looking seedy. Feeling rotten, eh?" said
the doctor, eying him critically for a few moments.
"Oh, I'm all right," said Barry. "The truth is, I've just been in
there with young Cameron. Rather a ghastly sight. Cameron's badly
knocked up. Can you do anything for him?"
"Sure thing," said the doctor cheerfully. "Stay right there where
you are. I'll bring you something in a moment or two. Now sit right
there, do you hear? Don't move."
In a few moments he returned, bringing hot coffee for them both.
"There," he said in a cheerful matter-of-fact voice, "drink that."
Barry gulped it down, Cameron taking his more slowly, and with
evident distaste. The doctor continued to converse with them in
tones of cheerful and, as Barry thought, of almost careless
indifference.
"Now, I must leave you," said the doctor. "I see there's a case of
shell shock. We didn't know how to handle that for a while. The
British R. A. M. C. for some months declined to recognise it as
requiring treatment at all. You might care to look at this chap.
Poor devil!"
Barry had been looking at the man ever since he had come into the
room, supported by two of his comrades. He was indeed an object of
pity. Of splendid physique, six feet and powerfully built, with the
fine intelligent face of an educated man, he stood there white,
twitching in every muscle, in a state of complete nerve-collapse.
Colonel Tait, who had been observing him keenly ever since his
entering the room, now approached him, greeted him with a cheerful
"Hello!" took him by the hand and felt his pulse.
"How are you, old chap? Feeling a little better than you were,
aren't you?"
"Yes--doc--tor. Rather--rotten--though-- Be all
right--to-morrow--"
"Sure you will! Still a little rest won't do you any harm. We'll
send you down for a couple of weeks, and then you will be fit enough
to have another go at the boche."
So saying he turned him over to an assistant, and went on with his
work. At this point Cameron, from whose eyes the look of horror had
not yet faded, leaned over to Barry and whispered:
"Let's get out of this. For Heaven's sake, this thing is getting
me." He glanced at Barry. "What, are you ill, too?"
"Ill," answered Barry between his clenched teeth. "Ill? No, why
should I be ill? Look at these boys. I see myself ill. By Jove!"
he added under his breath, "here's another shell shock. Sit down,
Cameron!" His voice took on a sterner tone. "Sit down. Don't be an
ass!"
Once more Colonel Tait took in hand the shell-shock man. This
second was a stretcher case. The man was very violent, requiring two
men to hold him on his stretcher.
"Oh, let him go! Let him go!" said Colonel Tait. "What's wrong
with you?" he said to the man. "Have you any wounds?"
"No, sir," chattered the man miserably. "Shell--shock,--sir.
Buried--twice--by a shell. Oh! Ah!"
The colonel had a few moments' conversation with Gregg, who came
over to where Barry was sitting and said:
"I say, Dunbar, watch this case. You will see some fun."
"Fun," echoed Barry, shaken and indignant. "Not much fun for that
poor chap."
"Stand up," said the colonel sharply.
The man stood up without much apparent difficulty.
"Ah!" said the colonel. "Shell shock. Bad case, too." His voice
was kind and sympathetic. He gripped the man by the arm and ran his
hand down his spine until he came to the small of his back.
"Pain there, eh?" he said, giving the man a poke.
"Yes, yes! Ouw! Doctor. Awful."
"Thought so," said the doctor. "Bad case! Poor chap! A curious
feeling in the legs, eh?"
The man nodded vigorously, still twitching violently and making
animal moanings.
Still pursuing his investigations and continuing to sympathise with
his patient, the doctor enquired as to other symptoms, to all of
which the patient promptly confessed. When the examination was
completed, the doctor gave his man a hearty slap on the back and
said:
"You're all right, my boy. Go treat yourself to a cup of cocoa,
and a good, thick slice of bread and raspberry jam--raspberry,
remember--and to-morrow you can report to your battalion medical
officer."
"What!" exclaimed the man. "Doctor, I can't go up again. I'm not
fit to go up."
"Oh, yes, you can, my boy. You'll be in good fighting trim to-
morrow. You'll see! You'll see! Come back here some day, perhaps,
with a V. C."
Thereupon the man began to swear violently.
"Here, none of that," said the doctor sharply, "or up you go to-
night."
A grin ran around the dressing station, in which none joined more
heartily than the first shell-shock man, waiting to be conveyed down
the line.
"They don't get by the old man often, nowadays," was Dr. Gregg's
comment.
"You don't often get cases like this, though, do you?" enquired
Barry.
"Not often. We have passed through this dressing station some
thousands of cases, and we may have had eight or ten malingerers. But
this is not all sham. There is a strong mixture of hysteria and
suggestion with the sham. A chap with a highly organised temperament
gets buried by a shell. That is a terrific nerve shock. He sees two
or three chaps blown to bits. Another nerve shock. Now he has heard
about shell shock as a result of a similar experience. Immediately
the suggestion begins to work and the man discovers in himself the
well known symptoms of genuine shell shock, and, begad! I don't
wonder. What we have just given him is part of the treatment for
hysteria--a little nerve tonic. A good sleep may put him all right by
to-morrow morning. The chances are, however, that the O. C. will send
him down for a few days' rest and change. If so, the chap will be as
happy as a clam. The boys will rag him half to death down there, so
that he will be keen to get back again, and the chances are may get
his V. C. Oh, we all get scared stiff," laughed Gregg. "We are none
of us proud about here. That hero stuff that you read about in the
home papers, we don't know much about. We just 'carry on'."
"By Jove, Gregg! That's all right, but to just 'carry on' in this
business, it seems to me, calls for some pretty fine hero stuff."
"Well, we don't call it so," said Gregg. "Now I'll see about your
ambulance. I believe there's one about ready to go. I think I can
find a place for you and your friend, and it will save you a long
walk."
They came away from the old mill with mingled feelings. Barry had
to a certain extent recovered from his shock, and had himself
somewhat firmly in hand. Cameron was still silent and obviously
shaken.
It was grey dawn when they arrived at the camp, physically weary,
nervously exhausted, and sick at heart. Barry wakened Hobbs, who
greeted them with the news that the battalion was under orders to go
up that night. By his own state Barry was able to gauge that of his
friend Cameron. The experiences of the last ten hours had been like
nothing in his previous life. The desolation wrought by war upon the
face of the country, upon the bodies of men, upon their souls, had
sickened and unnerved him; and this he remembered was an experience of
only a brief ten hours. He was conscious of a profound self-distrust
and humiliation, as he thought of those other men, those medical
officers, with their orderlies, the ambulance drivers, those wounded
soldiers. How could they endure this horror, day in and day out, for
weeks and for months? In a few hours he would have to meet his fellow
officers and the men. They could not fail to read in his face all this
that he carried in his heart.
By his grey, haggard face he knew that the same horror and fear had
gone deep into his friend's soul. There came to him the sudden
thought that Cameron, too, must meet his fellow officers, and must
endure their searching chaff, and that he would reveal himself to his
undoing; for no man can ever live down in his battalion the whisper
that he is a "quitter." That very night Cameron would be forced to
lead up his platoon into the front line, and must lead them step by
step over that same Vlammertinghe road, where the transports were
nightly shelled. In the presence of any danger soever, he must not
falter. When the shells would begin to fall, he knew well how the
eyes of his men would turn to their leader and search his very soul to
see of what quality he was. Far better a man should die than falter.
He had not failed to notice the startled look in Cameron's eyes when
Hobbs blurted out his news. Some way must be found for the bracing up
of the nerve, the steadying of the courage of his friend.
"Come in with me, Cameron," he said, standing at the door of his
hut. "I'm dead beat and so are you. We'll have coffee and some
grub, and then sleep for a couple of hours until reveille."
Cameron hesitated. The thing he most longed for at that moment was
to be alone.
"Come on!" insisted Barry. "Hobbs will have a fire going, and hot
coffee in ten minutes. Come on, old chap. I want you to."
He threw his arm around Cameron's shoulder and dragged him in. The
boy dropped onto Barry's cot, and, as he was, boots and coat on, was
asleep before the coffee was ready. His boyish face, with its haggard
look, struck pity to Barry's heart, and recalled his father's words,
"These boys need their mothers." If ever a lad needed his mother, it
was young Cameron, and just in that hour.
He woke the boy up, gave him his coffee, had Hobbs remove his
boots, made him undress and covered him up in his blankets. Then,
taking his own coffee, he lay down on Hobbs' bed.
"Harry," he said, "give us every minute of sleep you can. Wake us
just one-half hour before reveille with coffee and everything else
good you can rustle, and, Harry, waken me before Mr. Cameron."
When he lay down to sleep he made an amazing discovery--that his
own horror and fear and self-distrust had entirely passed away. He
felt himself quite prepared to "carry on." How had this thing come
to pass? His physical recuperation by means of coffee and food? This
doubtless in part, but only in part. In his concern for his friend he
had forgotten himself, and in forgetting himself he had forgotten his
fear. It was an amazing discovery.
"Thank the good God," he said. "He never forgets a fellow, and I
won't forget that."
He woke to find Hobbs at his side, with coffee, toast and bacon,
and on the floor beside his cot his tub awaiting him--the tub being a
rubber receptacle exactly eighteen inches in diameter.
He hurried through his dressing, and his breakfast, all the while
Cameron lying like a dead man, and with almost a dead man's face.
Barry hated to waken him, but reveille was but a bare thirty
minutes off, and he had an experiment to work upon his friend.
"Bring the coffee, Harry. Not the bacon, yet," he ordered.
"Hello, Cameron, old boy! Wake up."
Cameron rolled over with a groan and opened his eyes, still dull
and heavy with sleep.
"Here you are. Pipe this down your tunnel and look lively, too.
You have got thirty minutes--twenty-five, really--to reveille, and
you have your toilet to perform--shave, massage, manicure and all the
rest--so go to it. Here's your tub. You can't get into it, but soap
yourself over, and Hobbs will sluice you with a pail or two outside."
"Why all this Spartan stuff? It's awfully cold. I think I'll
content myself with a nose rub this morning."
"Get out of bed, and be quick about it," commanded Barry, "unless
you'd rather take your tub where you are."
So saying he jerked the clothes clear off the cot, threatening
Cameron with the tub. Cameron sprang up, stripped, soaped himself
over, groaning and shivering the while; then stood outside in the
open, while Hobbs administered the order of the bath, and after a
vigorous rub, came in glowing.
"By jingo! That's bully! It's a pity a fellow can't always feel
just how bully it is before he takes it."
"Na-a-w then! a little snap!" ordered Barry, in attempted imitation
of the inimitable Sergeant Major Hackett. "A little speed, ple-ease!
That's better. I've seen worse--not often!"
And so he rattled on through Cameron's dressing and shaving
operations.
"Now then, 'Obbs, a little Delmonico 'ere. Shove this bacon
against your fice, Cameron."
"What about yours, sir?" said Cameron, as he sat down to the
luxuries which somehow Hobbs had "rustled."
"Had it, you slacker." Then with a swift change of voice and
manner he added: "Listen to me, Cameron. I'm going to have my
prayers. You won't bother me any, and if you don't mind I'll do them
out loud. Don't you stop eating, though. Hobbs, stop your wandering
around there and sit down and listen." Barry took his Bible.
"Cameron," he said, "one comfort in reading the Bible to a chap
with a father like yours is that you know all about the thing
already--context, historical references and theological teaching--
therefore, no need of comment. Also you have a good imagination to
see things. Turn on the juice while I read. Hobbs, you waken up,
too."
Then he began to read the vivid words which picture as in miniature
etchings the life stories of the heroes of Faith who in their day
held their generation steady and pointed the way to duty and victory.
As he read his face became alight, his dark eyes glowed, his voice
thrilled under the noble passion of the words he read. Then he came to
this stately peroration:
"And what shall I more say? For the time would fail me to tell of
Gideon," and so on through the list of heroes, "Who through faith
subdued kingdoms, wrought righteousness, obtained promises, stopped
the mouths of lions, (of whom the world was not worthy). Wherefore
seeing we also are compassed about with so great a cloud of
witnesses, let us lay aside every weight, and the sin which doth so
easily beset us, and let us run with patience the race that is set
before us, looking unto Jesus, the author and finisher of our faith,
who, for the joy that was set before him, endured the cross, despising
the shame, and is set down at the right hand of the throne of God."
Both reader and hearers were swept along upon the tide of dramatic
passion. They were themselves a part of the great and eternal
conflict there pictured; they, too, were called upon to endure the
cross.
Cameron had forgotten his breakfast, and with his kindling eyes
fastened upon the reader's face, was listening to the noble music of
the thrilling words.
Barry closed his book and laid it down.
"Great, eh! Wonderful company! All the finest and the best of the
war's heroes are in it. Now, then, prayer--" He dropped on his
knees, Cameron and Hobbs following his example.
It was a prayer chiefly of thanksgiving for those who in their day
and in the face of anguish and terror and death had kept the faith;
of thanksgiving, too, for all who in this present day of sacrifice in
the home land and of sacrifice upon the field of battle were keeping
that same faith for the Empire and for this same sacred cause of
humanity. The prayer closed with a simple petition that they in the
battalion might be found worthy of a humble place in that great
company.
As they were repeating together the prayer "Our Father," the notes
of the reveille sounded shrilly over the camp.
"Go out, Hobbs, for a minute," said Barry after they had risen from
their prayer. He knew well that Cameron would want a few minutes
with him alone.
"Sir," said the boy, and his voice was quiet and steady, "I'm not
going to try to thank you, but I believe I can 'carry on' now."
"You bet you can," said Barry, gripping his hand. "You bet you
can! It's the point of view after all, old man, isn't it? For
ourselves it doesn't matter, but we have got to think of the boys,
and we have got to stay with the game."
Eighteen hours later the relief was completed, and the battalion
was in its place in the line, all but the sentries asleep in their
flimsy dugouts and behind their rotten parapets.
An hour later, Barry, who was sleeping with the M. O. in the
regimental aid post, was wakened from a dead sleep by the M. O.
"There's something doing out there," he said. "Listen!"
There was a quick succession of sharp explosions.
"Bombs!" said the M. O.
The explosions were followed by the rat-tat-tat--tat-tat--tat-tat-
tat of the machine guns. Instantly they were both on their feet and
out in the trench.
"I guess Fritzie is trying to put something over on us, being our
first night," said the M. O. "I'll get my boys out."
He ran to the adjoining dugout, where his corporal and stretcher
bearers were sleeping, roused them and sent them up the trench. There
was the sound of subdued voices and of quick marching feet along the
communication trench a few yards away. They stood together listening
for a few minutes.
"I'm going," said Barry, hurrying off in the direction of the
sound. "Come on."
"Captain Dunbar," called the M. O. sharply, "my place is here, and
I think this is where you will be most useful as well. They will
bring the wounded to us right here."
In a few minutes all was still again, except for the machine guns,
which still kept up their incessant tattoo.
The M. O. was correct in his forecast. In a few minutes down the
communication trench came a wounded man walking, jubilant in spite of
his wounds.
"Fritzie tried to put one over on us," he exclaimed, while the
doctor was dabbing with iodine and tying up his wounded arm, "but I
think he's got another guess coming. You ought to have seen our
officer," he added. "The first one in the bunch to be 'at 'em.' With
a bayonet, too, mind you. Grabbed one from a private as he ran past,
and bombs bursting like hell all around. Beg pardon, sir," he added,
turning to Barry. "He's some kid, poor chap. He's got his, I guess."
"Who is he?" asked the M. O.
"Lieutenant Cameron, sir."
"Cameron!" cried Barry. "Where is he?"
"They are carrying the stretcher cases right down to the dressing
station, I hear," said the man.
"I'm going, doc," said Barry, and was off at a run.
At the casualty clearing station there was no excitement, the
doctors and orderlies "carrying on" as usual, receiving the wounded,
dressing their wounds, sending them down with the smoothness and
despatch characteristic of their department.
"Cameron?" said the doctor in answer to Barry's question. "Why
certainly, I'll show you." And he led him to Cameron's cot.
"Well, old chap," said the doctor cheerily, "we're going to send
you down in a minute or two. Now don't talk."
Cameron's eyes welcomed Barry.
"Dear old boy," said Barry, dropping on his knees beside him. "I'm
awfully sorry."
"It's all right," whispered Cameron. "They--never--knew.--You'll
write dad--and tell him--I kept--" The voice trailed off into
silence. The morphia was doing its merciful work.
"Kept the faith," said Barry.
"Yes," whispered Cameron with a smile, faint but exultant.
"Good old boy," whispered Barry.
"Yes, I--kept--I kept--"
The bearers came to carry out the stretcher.
"Will he recover?" whispered Barry to the doctor.
"Recover? Surest thing you know," said the doctor in a loud cheery
voice. "We can't spare this kind of stuff, you know."
And again Barry leaned over the stretcher and said, patting Cameron
on the shoulder:
"Good old boy. You make us proud of you. You kept the faith."
"Three months in that hell-hole of the salient have made their mark
on this battalion," said Transport Sergeant Mackay.
"Yes, there's quite a lot of these round the first line and back
about here," replied the pioneer sergeant, who was putting the
finishing touches upon some crosses, that were to be sent up the line
that night.
"That's so, Fatty. Whose is that cross you are finishing?"
"That's Lieutenant Salford's, a fine young officer he was, too.
Always had a smile. The deeper the mud the more Sally smiled. And
this here is Lieutenant Booth's. There's a chap now that picked up
wonderful. Two months ago everybody thought he was a big soft slob,
and those bombers say that he was all, right. And here's the M. O.'s.
Poor old doc! There was a man, now, if there ever was one. He
wasn't afraid of nothing. He would go walking about with a smile when
a bombardment was on, and in that last big show the other day, they
say him and the chaplain--there's another peach-- they 'carried on'
wonderful. I wasn't around there at the time, but the boys at the
dressing station told me that them two worked back and forward getting
out the wounded, I think they had about thirty injured up at that
time, as if it was a kind of er summer shower that was falling, let
alone H. E.'s and whizzbangs, and then after they got the last man
out, the M. O. went in with some stretcher bearers, just lookin'
around before he left, and a shell came and got 'em all, and they say
it was about the last shell that was throwed. And that's where poor
Harry Hobbs got his, too. The Pilot went out just a minute before,
and when he came back that's what he saw. They say he was terrible
cut up over the M. O. Funny thing, the M. O.'s face was just as quiet
as if he had gone to sleep, but the rest of the boys, well you could
hardly get 'em together, and the Pilot walkin' up and down there
lookin' like a lost man. We buried 'em right there by Maple Copse. I
want to tell you, sergeant, that that's the hardest job I ever done in
this war. The Pilot, he broke right down in the middle of the
service. It must have been hard for him. I've been with him now at
every funeral and he stands up to his work like a man. He takes it
kind of cheery almost, but when we was puttin' down the M. O. and poor
Harry, the Pilot just couldn't appear to stand it. I cried like a
baby, and you ought to have seen the crowd, the O. C. and the
adjutant and the pioneers, and they are all pretty hardened up by
this time. They have done enough plantin' anyhow. They just all
went to pieces. The shells was goin' overhead among the trees,
something awful, but nobody minded more than if they had been pea-
shooters. First time I ever seen the Pilot break, and I have been
with him ever since the first one we buried, and that was big Jim
Berry. A sniper got him. You don't remember? I guess you don't see
much or get much of the news back here."
"Back here!" exclaimed Sergeant Mackay. "What do you mean, 'back
here'? Don't I have to go up every night with the transport, and
through that barridge, too. This aint no 'safety first' job."
"I know, sergeant. I'm not sayin' you ain't at war. Believe me,
I'd rather be up front than to go up round Hell Fire Corner and come
back by the Menin Gate every night like you fellows. I ain't sayin'
nothing about that, but you don't see things that I see, and you don't
get the news same as I do. Now, about Jim Berry, you know, he was
goin' to do some snipin' in place of McCuaig, who went to the machine
gun company."
"McCuaig, in the machine gun company! I never heard that."
"Well, that's what I'm sayin'," said Sergeant Matthews, "you don't
get some of the chances to get news down here, same as me. You see,
when we're sewin' up the boys and fixin' 'em up like, and when we're
fixin' up the graves and puttin' on the crosses, you get kind of
thinkin' about things, and kind of lonesome, and so the boys keep
telling the news to cheer themselves up, and that's how I heard about
McCuaig. You see, McCuaig was snipin' the first tour, and he's a
killer, you bet, and he had only cut three natches in his rifle. The
boys say he had got four of the Huns, but he had only put down three
natches on his rifle to be sure, and after he seen the machine gun
work, stoppin' a raid, he comes to the officer, and says he, givin'
him his rifle: 'Say, this is all right for sport, but it ain't good
enough for killin' these devils. I'd like to get on to your gang, if I
can,' and they put him right onto the machine gun. Say, he's sleepin'
with that Lewis gun ever since. Just pets it like a baby. What was I
tellin' you? Oh, yes, about McCuaig and Jim Berry. Well, he took
McCuaig's place snipin' and a good sniper he was too. He used to
hunt, you know, up in the mountains with Jim Knight every fall. Well,
he started out snipin' the day after McCuaig quit, and McCuaig gave
him his rifle too, and took him up to the 'hide.' Well, big Jim was
always a careless cuss, you know. He gets his eye on the hole,
sightin' his rifle, and McCuaig was watchin' through one of them new
things--"
"Perry's scope."
"Yes, that's it, Paris cope. Them French is mighty smart fellows,
you bet. When along walks a Hun. 'There he comes!' sings out
McCuaig. 'Didn't see him until he got past,' says Jim, pretty mad,
because Jim hated to show that he'd got 'buck fever,' or something,
and waited for the next. 'Here he comes!' says McCuaig, again.
'Bang!' goes Jim. 'I've got him,' he shouts, hoppin' up to get a
good look, when McCuaig grabs him and jerks him down, swearin'
somethin' awful, and tellin' him he wasn't shootin' no mountain
goats. 'Oh shaw!' says Jim. 'They can't get me.' 'You keep your
head down, Jim,' said McCuaig. That's the very last words he said to
him, just as he was leavin' him. He wasn't down the next day when
bang! goes Jim's rifle, and again up he jumps to see what he'd got,
when ping! goes a Boche bullet right through his head. You know
McCuaig was real mad, and he stood quiet at that hole for three hours.
Then he got Corporal Thom to shove up a hat on a rifle, when ping!
comes the bullet and bang! goes Jim's rifle. 'Guess he won't shoot no
more, unless there's shootin' in hell,' says he, and makes another
natch. Say, the boys all felt bad about Jim and so did the Pilot.
Well, we had to plant him that night, as we was goin' out next day.
It was out beyond the Loop. You don't know where that is, I guess."
"Of course, I do," asserted Mackay indignantly. "I've been all
around that front line. What are you givin' us!"
"Oh, you have, eh! Well, I wouldn't unless I had to, you bet.
It's no place for a man with a waist line like mine. Well, as I was
sayin', that cemetery was right out in the open, right under
observation, and exposed to machine guns, snipers, whizbangs, all the
hull bloody lot of 'em. Wasn't no place for a cemetery anyway, I say.
I'm not after any bomb proof job but a cemetery should be--"
"Should be a quiet and retired spot," suggested one of the
transport boys.
"Yes. What's the use of getting livin' men shot up when they're
buryin' dead men, I want to know. Not saying anything about the
officers that's always round, and the chaplain. I say a cemetery
should be somewhere out of sight, like Maple Copse; now, there's a
good place, except that the roots make it hard diggin'. Up against a
railway bank like that down at Zillebeck, by the Railway Dugouts,
there's a lovely place."
"How would the Ramparts do, sergeant?" enquired another transport
lad.
"Ramparts? You mean at Ypres? Yes," said the sergeant, with a
grin, "but I'd hate to turn out the Brigade Headquarters Staff."
"Go on, sergeant."
"Well, as I was sayin', that's no place for a cemetery up there
beyond the Loop, but I didn't know so much about it then, you bet.
That's where we had to bury Jim. It was a awful black night, and of
course, just as we got out to the trench to go 'overland' to the
cemetery, them flares started up something awful. I don't know what
they was lookin' for, but when they went up, I want to tell you, I
felt about the size of a tree, and I wisht I was one. Well, Jim, you
know, was pretty heavy, an awful heavy carry he was for the boys. I
was tryin' to hurry 'em along, but that Pilot, he heads the
procession, and on he goes at a funeral march pace. Now I believe in
doin' things right. I've heard of some pioneers that hurries their
job. I don't believe in that, but when you are going across the open
on a dark night, with them flares going up, I say between flares is a
good time to get a move on, but, no, that there Pilot, he just goes
that pace and no more. I want to tell you the boys was nervous and
the officers too. The O. C. and Major Bustead was there. I could see
the major fussin' to get on. Well, we got Jim down all right, and
just as the Pilot got started, darned if they didn't open up the
biggest kind of a machine gun chorus you ever heard."
"What did you do, sergeant?"
"Me? Well, I started huggin' mud and saying all the good words I
could think of. Even the O. C. got down on his knees, and the major,
he near got into the grave, but that darned Pilot stood up there
getting taller every minute, and goin' on with his prayer, and the
boys sayin' 'Amen!' that loud and emphatic that I thought he'd take
the hint and cut out somethin', but cut out nothin'! Seemed as if his
memory was workin' over time, the way he kept a fetchin' up things
that he could a easily forgot, and when he comes to the benediction,
the whizbangs begin to come. Up goes his hand, the way they do. I
thought to myself that that was a kind of unnecessary display. I
looks up and there he was, more like a tree than ever. In fact, I
says to myself--it's queer how you think things at times like
that--darned if they won't think the darned fool is a tree, for
nothin' but a darned tree would stand up in the flare light and look
so much like a tree anyhow. I guess that's what saved him. He never
moved until he was done, and then didn't he stay with us pioneers
after the rest had gone until we filled up. Say, he's all right."
"You bet he's all right," said Sergeant Mackay, "and he's gettin'
in his work with the boys."
"What do you mean, 'gettin' in his work'?" enquired the pioneer
sergeant.
"Oh, well, you know," said Sergeant Mackay awkwardly, "he's makin'
'em think a lot different about things. I know he has 'em tied up
all right in their language." And this was as near to a confession
of faith as the sergeant cared to go.
"Oh, I can see a difference myself up the line," said the pioneer
sergeant. "The boys used to get out of his way. He used to jump on
'em something fierce. You remember?"
"Huh-uh!"
"Well, they just love to have him drop in now and they tell him
things. I saw Corporal Thom the other night showin' him his girl's
picture, and the Pilot thought she was a fine girl too, and got her
address down, and said he was going to write her and tell her what a
fine chap the corporal was, and you ought to see Corporal Thom swell
up until he 'most bust his tunic."
"Oh, I know the corporal's dippy about the Pilot," said Sergeant
Mackay.
"Yes, and the officers, too," said the pioneer sergeant. "There's
Captain Duff. Well, you know what a holy terror he is."
"He's all right," said Sergeant Mackay stoutly. "He was my chief
for about a month here, and he was the first one to get this
transport licked into shape, you bet."
"I'm not saying anything against Captain Duff, but he was a
roughneck, you know well enough, and I guess he hadn't much use for
the Pilot."
"Oh, I know all about that," said Sergeant Mackay. "The Pilot used
to go up with us on the transport. It was awful hard on Captain
Duff, handlin' the column and the mules and all the rest, to hold in
when the Pilot was along. The captain, he had to come round now and
then to the rear. There he would have a lovely time for a few
minutes, with the Pilot safe up in front. But the Pilot calmed him
down all right."
"Yes, and there's that young Captain Fraser," said the pioneer
sergeant, with a note of enthusiasm in his monotonous voice. "There a
soldier. He just loved fightin'. I remember the night he got his
wound. It was on a raid of course. If there was a raid on, Captain
Neil was sure to be there. He just about got his arm blown off, but
they say he's goin' to be all right. I was at the regimental aid post
when they fetched him in. Oh, he was a dirty mess, face all cut up,
and his arm hangin', and not a word out of him until the Pilot comes
along. Then he begins to chirp up and the Pilot starts jollyin' him
along one minute and sayin' Psalms to him the next minute, and little
prayers, and the boys around listenin', sometimes grinnin' and
sometimes all choked up, but I'm awful glad Captain Neil is comin'
round all right."
By this time the pioneer sergeant had his crosses finished.
"Well," he said, as he set the crosses against the wall, "there's
three of the finest officers we ever had in this battalion. You take
'em up to-night when you go, sergeant."
"We're not going up to-night. The boys are coming out this
evening," replied Sergeant Mackay.
"No? Is that so? I never heard that. Guess I'll have to go up
with some other outfit. Comin' out this evening? Well, it's time
they were. They've had one hell all the time, I hear, this tour."
"Yes," continued Sergeant Mackay, "and the highlanders are sending
up their band to meet them and play them out. I call that a mighty
fine thing to do. You know our own band had to go up with water and
rations last night, and they can't get out until to-night. So the
Highlanders' band--"
"Pretty good band, too, isn't it?"
"Best pipe band in the army," said Sergeant Mackay with enthusiasm.
"Oh, a pipe band!" exclaimed the pioneer sergeant in a disappointed
tone.
"Yes, a pipe band, what else?" enquired Sergeant Mackay
truculently.
"Why don't they send up their real band, when they're doin' it,
anyway?"
"What!" shouted Sergeant Mackay. "I'll tell you. For the same
reason that they don't make you O. C. in this battalion, you damned
fat lobster! There now, you've started me swearin' again, and I was
quittin' it."
Sergeant Mackay's wrath at the slur cast upon the pipe band, the
only band, in his opinion, worthy of any real man's attention, was
intensified by his lapse into his habit of profanity, which, out of
deference to the Pilot, he for some weeks had been earnestly striving
to hold in check.
"Oh well, Scotty, don't spoil your record for me. I guess a pipe
band is all right for them that likes that kind of music. For me, I
can't ever tell when they quit tunin' up and begin to play."
Sergeant Mackay looked at him with darkening face, evidently
uncertain as to what course he should adopt--whether to "turn himself
loose" upon this benighted Englishman or to abandon him to his
deserved condition of fatuous ignorance. He decided upon the latter
course. In portentous silence he turned his back upon Fatty Matthews
and walked the whole length of the line to get a mule back over the
rope. It took him some little time for the mule had his own mind
about the manoeuvre and the sergeant was unwontedly deliberate and
gentle with him. Then, the manoeuver executed, he walked slowly back
to the pioneer sergeant and in restrained and carefully chosen speech
addressed him.
"Look here, Fatty, I'm askin' you, don't you ever say things like
that outside of these lines, for the sake of the regiment, you know.
I'd really hate the other battalions to know we had got such--" He
halted himself abruptly and then proceeded more quietly, "A man as you
in this battalion. My God, Fatty, they'd think your brains had run
down into your pants. I know they haven't, because I know you haven't
any." He took a fresh breath, and continued his address in a tone of
patient remonstrance. "Why, man, don't you know that wherever the
British Army has gone, its Highland regiments have cleared the way;
and that when the pipes get playin' the devil himself couldn't hold
them back?"
"I don't wonder," said Fatty innocently. "They make a man feel
like fightin' all right."
Sergeant Mackay scanned his face narrowly, uncertain as to whether
he should credit the pioneer sergeant with intelligence sufficient to
produce a sarcasm.
"What I mean is," exclaimed Fatty, seeking to appease the wrathful
transport sergeant, "when you hear them pipes, you get so stirred up,
you know, that you just feel like kullin' somebody."
This apparently did not improve matters with Sergeant Mackay.
"Oh, darn it, you know what I mean!"
"No, Fatty," said the sergeant solemnly. "I don't know what you
mean, but I'll suggest this to you, Fatty. You go down to that Pete
mule, down there at the end of the line and talk to him. I guess
he'll understand you. I'm busy just now."
"I don't see what you're so hot about," said the pioneer sergeant
in an aggravated voice, "but I'm going to see the boys come in
anyway."
When the distant sound of the pipes coming from the direction of
the front line was heard in camp, men of the various transport lines
and base units lined up to watch the battalion come in. For the
rumour had run that they had had a bad go, that they had beaten back
no less than three rather formidable raids of the enemy and had been
badly cut up. More than that, by reason of the lack of
reinforcements, they had had to do a double tour, so that they were
returning from an experience of thirteen days, in what was indeed the
veritable mouth of hell.
"I guess they are all pretty well all in," said Sergeant Matthews,
who, standing with his pioneers, had been carefully avoided by his
friend Sergeant Mackay. That enthusiastic Scot had for the time
being abandoned his transport, and was fraternising with the
transport men of the Highlanders, with whom he was sure he would feel
himself in more complete accord.
"Here they come, boys," said a Scot, as the sound of the pipes grew
louder. "There's a drummer for ye. Listen 'til that double roll,
wull ye?"
"Ay, Danny, the boys will be shovin' out their chests and hitchin'
their hips about something awful."
"Ye may say that, Hec. Will ye look at young Angus on the big
drum, man, but he has got the gr-rand style on him."
"Ay, boys, they are the la-ads," said Sergeant Mackay, yielding to
the influence of his environment and casually dropping into the
cadence of the Highlanders about him, which, during his ten years in
the west, his tongue had well-nigh lost. "It's a very fine thing,
your pipers are doing, playing our boys out in this way, and we won't
be forgetting that in a hurry."
"Why for no?" enquired Hec, in surprise. "It's the Highlanders
themselves that love a bonny fighter."
Down the road, between lines of silent men, came the pipers with
waving kilts and flying tartans, swinging along in their long swaying
stride, young Angus doing wonders on the big drum, with his whirling
sticks, and every piper blowing his loudest, and marching his
proudest. Behind them came the men of the battalion marching at
attention, their colonel at their head, grave of face and steady.
Behind the colonel marched Major Bayne, in place of the senior major,
whom illness had prevented from accompanying the battalion on this
last tour, no longer rotund and cheery as was his wont, but with face
grey, serious and deep lined. After him at the head of A Company
marched Captain Duff, his rugged, heavy face looking thinner and
longer than its wont but even fiercer than ever. With eyes that
looked straight before then, heedless of the line of silent onlookers,
the men marched on, something in their set, haggard faces forbidding
applause. At the rear of the column marched the chaplain alone, and
every one knew that he had left up in the Salient behind him his
friend and comrade, the M. O., whose place in all other marching had
been at his right hand. All knew too how during this last go, in the
face of death in its most terrifying form, they had carried out their
wounded comrades one by one until all were brought to safety. And all
knew too, how the chaplain carried with him that day a sore and lonely
heart for the loss of one who was more to him than batman, and who had
become his loyal and devoted friend. The chaplain's face was gaunt
and thin, with hollow cheeks, but for all that, it wore a look of
serene detachment.
"Say, he looks awful tough," said a voice in Sergeant Mackay's ear.
Sergeant Mackay turned sharply around upon Fatty Matthews.
"Tough! Tough!" he exclaimed, with a choke in his voice. "You're
a damned liar, that's what you are. He looks fine. He looks fine,"
he added again furiously. "He looks as if hell itself couldn't scare
him."
In the sergeant's eyes strange lights were glistening.
"Yes, you're right, sergeant," said Fatty Matthews humbly. "You're
right, and that's where he's been, too, I guess."
Bravely and gallantly, with the historic and immortal "Cock o' the
North" shrilling out on the evening air, the pipers played them on to
the battalion parade ground, where they halted, silent still and with
that strange air of detached indifference still upon them. They had
been through hell. Nothing else could surprise them. All else,
indeed, seemed paltry.
Briefly, but with heart-reaching words, the colonel thanked the
pipers for what he called "an act of fine and brotherly courtesy."
Then turning to his men, he spoke a few words before dismissal.
"Men, you have passed through a long and hard time of testing. You
have not failed. I am not going to praise you, but I want you to
know that I am proud of you. Proud to be your commanding officer. I
know that whatever is before us, you will show the same spirit of
endurance and courage.
"We have lost this time twenty-nine men, eleven of them killed, and
with these three very brave and very gallant officers, among them our
medical officer, a very great loss to this battalion. These men did
their duty to the last. We loved them. We shall miss them, but
to-day we are proud of them. Let us give three cheers for our gallant
dead."
With no joyous outburst, but with a note of fierce, strained
determination, came the cheers. In spite of all he could do, Barry
could not prevent a shudder as he heard the men about him cheering
for those whom he had so recently seen lying, some of them sorely
mutilated, in their grey blankets.
"Now, men," concluded the O. C., "we must 'carry on.' You will
have a couple of hours in which to clean up and have supper, and then
we shall have to-night a cinema show, to which I hope you will all
come, and which I hope you will all greatly enjoy."
The colonel's little speeches, as a rule, elicited appreciative
cheers, but this afternoon there was only a grave silence. After
dismissal, the men went to their huts and were soon busy giving
themselves a "high mark scrub" preliminary to the hot bath and
"jungle hunt" in which they would indulge themselves to-morrow.
As Barry was moving off the parade ground, the junior major caught
up to him, and took him by the arm and said:
"I have sent around my batman to your hut. He will look after you
until I can pick out a man from the new draft. We all know how you
feel about Hobbs, old man."
"Thank you, major," said Barry quietly. "I appreciate that."
"You will be around to-night," continued the major.
"No, I think not. I have a lot of things to do. All those letters
to write." Barry shuddered as he spoke. For nothing in all his
ministerial experience was to him a more exhausting and heartbreaking
task than the writing of these letters to the relatives and friends
of his dead comrades.
"I think you had better come," said the major earnestly. "I know
the O. C. would like it, and the boys would like it too."
"Do you think so?" said Barry. "Then I'll be there."
"Good man," said Major Bayne, patting him on the shoulder. "That's
the stuff we like in this battalion."
Barry found his hut in order, his things out for airing, his tub
ready, and supper in preparation.
"Thanks, Monroe," he said to Major Bayne's batman, as he passed
into his hut.
As he entered his hut and closed the door, for the first time there
swept over his soul an appalling and desolating sense of loneliness.
It was his first moment of quiet, his first leisure to think of
himself for almost two weeks. With the loss of his batman there had
been snapped the last link with that old home life of his, now so
remote but all the dearer for that. It came to him that while he
remained a soldier, this was to be his continual experience. Upon
his return from every tour new gaps would stare at him. Up in the
lines they did not so terribly obtrude themselves, but back here in
rest billets they thrust themselves upon him like hideous mutilations
upon a well loved face. He could hardly force himself to remove his
muddy, filthy clothes. He would gladly have laid himself down upon
his cot just as he was, and given himself up to the luxury of his
grief and loneliness, until sleep should come, but his life as a
soldier had taught him something. These months of discipline, and
especially these last months of companionship with his battalion
through the terrible experiences of war, had wrought into the very
fibre of his life a sense of unity with and responsibility for his
comrades. His every emotion of loss, of grief, of heart-sickness
carried with it the immediate suggestion and remembrance that his
comrades too were passing through a like experience, and this was his
salvation. Weary, sick, desolate as he felt himself in this hour, he
remembered that many of his comrades were as he, weary, and sick and
desolate. He wondered how the major's batman felt.
"Well, Monroe," he said with an attempt at a voice of cheer,
"pretty tough go this time."
"Yes, sir, very tough," said Monroe. "I lost my chum this time,"
he added after a few moments' silence.
"Poor chap," said Barry. "I'm awfully sorry for you. It's hard to
leave a friend up there."
"It is that, sir," replied Monroe, and then he added hurriedly but
with hesitation, "and if you will pardon me, sir, we all know it's
awful tough for you. The boys all feel for you, sir, believe me."
The unexpected touch of sympathy was too much for Barry's self-
control. A rush of warm tears came to his eyes and choked his voice.
For some minutes he busied himself with his undressing, but Monroe
continued speaking.
"Yes, sir, the Wapiti bunch is getting pretty small. Corporal Thom
was with me--"
"Corporal Thom!" cried Barry. "Was Corporal Thom your chum?"
"Yes, sir, for six years we was on the Bar U. M. together. We was
awful close friends. He was a good chum."
"Corporal Thom!" exclaimed Barry again; "he was your chum! He was
a great friend of mine too. You have indeed suffered a great loss."
"He thought a lot of you, sir," said Monroe. "He has often talked
to me about you."
"But what a splendid death!" cried Barry. "Perfectly glorious!"
"I didn't hear, sir," said Monroe; "I came down three days ago, and
only heard that a bomb got him."
"Oh, splendid," said Barry. "Nothing finer in the war. Let me
tell you about it. There was an enemy raid coming up. The corporal
had got wind of it and called his men out. They rushed into the front
line bay. Just as they got there, eight or ten of them, a live bomb
fell hissing among them. They all rushed to one end of the bay, but
the corporal kicked the bomb to the other end, and then threw himself
on top of it. He was blown to pieces, but no one else was hurt."
During the recital of this tale, Monroe stood looking at Barry and
when he had finished his eyes were shining with tears.
"Ay, sir, he was a man, sir," he said at length.
"Yes, you have said it, Monroe. He was a man, just a common man,
but uncommonly like God, for He did the same thing. He gave Himself
for us."
Monroe turned away to his work in silence.
"Monroe," said Barry, calling him back, "look here, lad, it would
not be right for us to grieve too much for Corporal Thom. We ought
to be thankful for him and proud of him, should we not?"
"Yes, sir, I know, sir, but," he added while his lip trembled, "you
hate to lose your chum."
Only under compulsion of his conscience did Barry go to the cinema
show that night, which in this camp was run under the chaplain
service and by a chaplain. He knew what the thing would be like. His
whole soul shrunk from the silly, melodramatic films which he knew
would constitute the programme as from a nauseating dose of medicine.
The billboard announced a double header, a trite and, especially to
Canadians, a ridiculous representation of the experiences of John Bull
and his wife and pretty daughter as immigrants to the Canadian
Northwest, which was to be followed by the immortal Charlie Chaplin.
The cinema hut was jammed--the whole battalion, now much reduced in
numbers, officers and men being present, and with them the men of the
base units and transports of other battalions. It was in some senses
an unusual gathering. There was an entire absence of the wonted chaff
and uproarious horseplay; instead a grave and almost bored air rested
upon the men's faces. The appalling experiences of the past thirteen
days seemed to dwarf all other things in comparison. They had been in
the presence of the Big Thing; all else seemed petty; they had been
looking into death's cold eyes; after that other sights seemed
trivial. Many of them carried sore hearts for their comrades with
whom they had at other times foregathered in just such circumstances
as these, but nevermore again.
It was the custom in the battalion, as the officers came into such
gatherings as this, to receive them with a ripple of applause, but
to-night there was silence. Barry arrived late. When he appeared
there fell upon the men a hush, and then as he moved toward the front
seats reserved for the officers, the men began to rise until the whole
battalion was standing silent and motionless, and so remained until he
had found a seat. It was Major Bayne who called his attention to this
unusual demonstration, which was reserved only for great occasions and
for nothing less than a battalion commander.
"They are saluting you, Pilot," said Major Bayne in a whisper,
himself standing with the other officers.
Barry quickly lifted his eyes, saw the men standing, with all eyes
directed toward him, slowly looked over the rows of faces, smiled a
bright but slightly wavering smile, turned and saluted the Commanding
Officer, and sat down all trembling and shaken by this most touching
tribute of sympathy and affection.
The show began with some pictures of great allied leaders which
excited a mild interest and drew some perfunctory applause. Then
came the tragic comedy of John Bull's experiences as an immigrant,
when just as the interest began to deepen, the machine blew up, and
the pictures were off for the night.
Ordinarily such a contretemps would have been by no means fatal to
the evening's enjoyment, for in the battalion there was no lack of
musical and other talent, and an impromptu entertainment was easily
possible. Ordinarily, too, in such an emergency there would at once
have arisen a demand for the chaplain, who had come to be recognised
as a great standby in times of need such as this. To- night, however,
everything seemed changed. The mild suggestion of one of the men that
the chaplain should take the piano was promptly discouraged by the
dissenting growls of the others present. They knew well how their
chaplain was feeling.
"What shall we do?" asked Major Bayne of Barry.
"Get Coleman to the piano. He is a perfect wizard," suggested
Barry, indicating a young lieutenant who had come to the battalion
with the recent draft, and who had done some accompaniments for
Barry's violin playing.
Lieutenant Coleman, on being called for, went to the piano, and
began to play. He was indeed a wizard as Barry had said, with a
genius for ragtime and popular music hall ditties, and possessed also
of the further gift of improvisation that made his services invaluable
on just such an occasion as this.
From one popular air to another he wandered, each executed with
greater brilliance than the last, but he failed to excite anything
more than a mild interest and approval. The old songs which on other
occasions had been wont to let loose the song birds of the battalion
seemed to have lost their power. It was not gloom, but a settled and
immovable apathy which apparently nothing could break.
"This is going awfully slow," said Major Bayne to Barry. "I wish
something could be done."
"The boys are tired out," answered Barry, himself weary and sick of
the performance and longing more than anything else for solitude and
his cot.
The Commanding Officer came over and sat beside them. He was
obviously worried and uneasy.
"I don't like this," he said to the major. "Coleman is doing his
best, and is doing mighty well, but there is no heart in the boys,
and it isn't entirely due to physical weakness. I wish we could
start something that would wake them up before they leave. They
would sleep much better."
"The Pilot here can do it," said Major Bayne in an undertone, "but
I rather hate to ask him for he is pretty much all in."
They sat a little while longer listening to the men's half hearted
drawling of "The Tulip and the Rose."
"This won't do," said the O. C. abruptly. "Get Dunbar over here."
"Dunbar," said the O. C. when Barry had come to him. "This thing
is as dull as ditchwater. I want to get the boys started up a bit.
They are hopelessly dull. Look at their eyes. Do you know what they
are seeing?"
"Yes, sir," said Barry, "they are seeing what they have been
looking at for the last thirteen days."
"You are right, Dunbar, and that's what I want them to forget. Now
I know you don't feel very fit, and I hate to ask you, but I believe
you can do something for the men with that violin of yours. What do
you say?"
"I have already sent a man for it," said Major Bayne. "I knew he'd
do it, and his violin lies there under the piano."
Without announcement or preface Barry walked straight to the stage
where Coleman, having miserably failed to strike fire with "The Tulip
and the Rose," was grinding out, with great diligence and
conscientious energy, "Irish Eyes." Barry picked up his violin from
the floor, mounted the stage, laid his violin on the piano, then he
took his place behind the pianist and, bending over him, reached down,
caught him under the legs and while still in full tide of his
performance, lifted him squarely off the stool and deposited him upon
a chair at one side of the stage. Then, ignoring the amazed look upon
Coleman's face, he proceeded gravely to tune his violin to the piano.
The act itself, the cool neatness with which it was performed, the
astonished face of the outraged pianist, all together created a
situation excessively funny. The effect upon the audience was first
one of surprise, then of unalloyed delight. Immediately every man in
the hall was wide awake, and as the humour of the situation grew upon
them, they began to cheer in quite a lively manner.
When Barry put his violin to his chin they cheered again, for often
had he bewitched them with the magic of his instrument.
Before he began to play, he glanced over his shoulder at the
discomfited Coleman and remarked in an undertone, perfectly audible
throughout the hall, "Now we'll have some music."
Again the audience went off in a perfect storm of delighted cheers,
which were renewed from time to time as Barry would turn looking with
a grave face upon the still amazed Coleman, not yet quite recovered
from his first astonishment.
When quiet was finally restored, Barry began to play. For his
opening number he made a daring choice. It was the intricate but
altogether tuneful Ballade and Polonaise by Vieuxtemps. Throughout
the somewhat lengthy number he held his audience fixed under the
mastery of his art. It was a triumph immediate and complete. When
he had finished the last brilliant movement of the Polonaise, the men
burst again into enthusiastic cheering, moved not only by the music
but more by the spirit of their chaplain, which they could not fail to
understand and appreciate.
He had already achieved what the O. C. had desired, but he was not
yet done with them. Having finished his classical selection, which
he was quite well aware Coleman could not touch, he turned to the
latter and gravely motioned him to the piano stool. Coleman
hesitated, not knowing quite what would be demanded of him.
"Come on, Coleman, be a sport," shouted a young officer, the
audience joining once more in encouraging cheers.
Still Coleman hesitated. One never knew just what vagary the
chaplain might put on. Failing to move him by imploring gesture,
Barry finally approached him, and with elaborate, courteous
formality, offered him his hand, and finally conducted him to the
piano stool. Again the delighted audience went into a roar of
cheers.
From that moment, and for a full hour, Barry had them at his will,
now listening spellbound to some simple old heart song, now beating
hand and foot to a reel, now roaring to the limit of their lung power
some old and well-loved popular air.
"Ain't he a bird?" said the major to the Commanding Officer.
"He's fine," assented the Commanding Officer with a great sigh. "I
can't tell you what a burden he has lifted from me. It's worth a
week's rest to the men, and, poor chaps, they need it." Lowering his
voice, he leaned over to the major and said, "We may be going up again
to-morrow night."
"To-morrow night, colonel!" exclaimed the major, aghast.
"Not a word, but I have exceedingly grave news. The front line is
driven in. One of the battalions holding is completely wiped out."
"Wiped out? Good God, and where are the enemy?"
"As far as I can hear, although I haven't the particulars, they
have broken through from Hooge to Hill 60, are through Sanctuary
Wood, and down to Maple Copse. Two relief battalions have gone up
and are holding. The chances are we shall have to go to back them up
to-morrow evening. It's hard on the boys, for they have come through
a long and bitter experience, but not a word of this, major, to any
one. We shall let them have their rest to-night. That's why I was so
anxious about this entertainment. That's why I am particularly
grateful to that Pilot of ours. He is a wonder, and by the look of
him he is about all in. He is staying magnificently with the game.
And now, major, I am going to do something that will please him
immensely. At least I think it will."
At a pause in the music, the O. C. arose and moved toward the
stage. Barry at once stepped back to the rear. Standing before the
men, the O. C. spoke briefly:
"I wish to thank in your name, men, our chaplain, and his
assistant, Mr. Coleman, for the very delightful evening they have
given us. I know how you feel by the way I feel myself. I need say
no more, and now, seeing that we have missed our parade service for
the last two Sundays, and as I should not like the chaplain to become
rusty in his duty, I'm going to ask him to bring our very pleasant
evening to a close with a little service such as he himself would
suggest."
Hardly were the words out of his mouth, when Barry took up his
violin and said:
"Boys, did you have a good time to-night?"
"Yes, sir; you bet we had, sir."
"Well, then, if you had, sing this," and recited for them the first
verses of the old hymn,
"Abide with me, fast falls the even tide."
When they had sung the first verse, he said again:
"Now sing these words," and once more he recited the stirring
verse:
"I fear no foe, with Thee at hand to bless."
When they had finished the verse, he said to them
"Shall we have another?"
"Go on, sir!" they said. "Sure thing!" "Finish it up!"
"Then," said Barry, "sing these words":
"I need Thy presence every passing hour, What but Thy grace can
foil the tempter's power."
Then when he had finished the verse, he dropped the violin and,
moving to the edge of the platform, said, in a voice vibrant with
emotion:
"Don't sing these words, but say them as I play them for you."
He then recited the moving words with which the old hymn closes:
"Hold Thou Thy cross before my closing eyes; Shine through the
gloom and point me to the skies; Heaven's morning breaks, and earth's
vain shadows flee, In life, in death, O Lord, abide with me."
"I want every one of you to say the words to himself as I play
them."
In long-drawn, tremulous notes he voiced the beautiful plea for aid
in the hour of man's supreme need, which finds expression in the
first two lines. Then, with his bow gripping the strings in a great
sweeping crescendo, he poured forth in full strong chords the
triumphant faith with which the hymn closes.
He laid his violin on the piano, stood quite a few moments looking
upon them, then said:
"Men, listen to these great words. They might have been written
for us, and for these days;" and he recited to them the words of the
Hebrew psalm, eloquent of courage in the face of a crumbling world:
"God is our refuge and strength, a very present help in trouble.
Therefore will not we fear, though the earth be removed, and though
the mountains be carried into the midst of the sea.
Though the waters thereof roar and be troubled, though the
mountains shake with the swelling thereof. Selah.
There is a river, the streams whereof shall make glad the city of
God, the holy place of the tabernacles of the Most High.
God is in the midst of her; she shall not be moved. God shall help
her and that right early.
The heathen raged, the kingdoms were moved; he uttered his voice,
the earth melted.
The Lord of hosts is with us; the God of Jacob is our refuge.
Selah.
Come, behold the words of the Lord, what desolations he hath made
in the earth.
He maketh wars to cease unto the end of the earth; he breaketh the
bow, and cutteth the spear in sunder: he burneth the chariot in the
fire.
Be still and know that I am God; I will be exalted among the
heathen, I will be exalted in the earth.
The Lord of hosts is with us; the God of Jacob is our refuge."
Then they followed him in the General Confession, and the Lord's
prayer.
"Captain Dunbar," said the O. C., offering him his hand, "you have
done for us to-night a greater thing than you know just now. You
will understand better tomorrow. With all my heart I thank you on
the men's behalf and on my own behalf, for I assure you I needed it
as much as they did. I want to assure you, too, sir, that I received
to-night the thing I needed."
"Thank you, sir," said Barry simply, too weary to utter another
word, and staggered out, half dead with exhaustion.
Half an hour later, as he was leisurely undressing, and drinking
the cup of cocoa which Monroe had prepared for him, a message
summoned him to the orderly room. There he found Colonel Leighton
with Major Bayne and the company commanders.
"I have a communication here for you, Captain Dunbar," said the O.
C., "from your D. A. C. S.," and he passed him a little slip.
It was the announcement of his "leave."
"Well, what do you think of that?" said the O. C. "How does that
suit you?"
"Well, sir," said Barry, uncertainty and hesitation in his voice,
"I'd like the leave, all right, but can I conveniently be spared just
now?"
"Most certainly," said the O. C., "and, what's more, I want you to
go to-night. Can you get ready?"
"I suppose so, sir," said Barry, wearily.
"By Jove! listen to him," said the O. C. "He hates to leave us,
doesn't he?" And they all laughed. "Now, Dunbar," he said, "no more
posing. You catch the leave train to-night at Poperinghe. As a
matter of fact, I think it starts somewhere about twelve."
"Thank you, sir," said Barry. "I think I can catch it."
"Then good luck!" said the O. C., rising from his chair. "Every
one of us here would like to be in your place, but since it isn't
himself, every man is glad that it should be you."
Still Barry hesitated.
"I really hate to leave you, sir, just now," he said. "I mean
that," he added with a little nervous laugh.
"Oh, come on, Dunbar," said the O. C. in a voice whose gruffness
might signify almost any emotion, but with a touch upon his shoulder
that Barry knew meant comradeship. "Say good-bye to the boys here,
and get out."
They had just finished the plan for the campaign of the next night,
and every man in that little company knew that for him this might be
his last "Good-bye" to the chaplain. It only added to the depth of
their feeling that they knew that of all this Barry was unconscious.
But, whether it was that unconsciously he had gathered something of
the real significance of the situation, or whether it was that he
himself had reached the limit of emotional control, as he passed from
man to man, shaking hands in farewell, his lips refused to utter a
single word, but in his eyes were unshed tears that spoke for him.
Major Bayne followed him to the door, and outside:
"Take my horse and Monroe with you, and good-bye, old man. All
sorts of good luck. Remember that we all feel to-night that you are
really one of us, and that we are better men because we have known
you. Goodbye."
Again Barry was conscious of that strange suggestion, almost of
impending calamity.
"I hate to go, major," he said. "I believe I'll wait."
"Nonsense," said the major impatiently. "Take your leave when you
get your chance, and have a good time. You have earned it."
At Poperinghe the leave train was waiting in the station, and a
little company of officers and men were having their papers examined
preparatory to their securing transportation. Some of the officers
were from his own brigade and were known to Barry.
"A big push on at the front, I hear," said one of them to a friend.
"Yes, major," said his friend. "They have been having a perfect
hell of a time."
"By the way, your men are going in to-morrow, I understand," said
the major, turning to Barry.
"I don't think so, major," replied Barry. "We have just come out."
"Oh, well, I had it from fairly good authority that they were going
in to-morrow night."
Barry hunted up Monroe, whom he found talking to a signaller of the
battalion.
"Did you boys hear anything about the battalion going up
to-morrow?"
"Yes, sir," said the signaller promptly. "We had it over the
wires. They are going in, all right, to-morrow night."
Monroe kicked the signaller on the ankle.
"Did you hear anything about it, Monroe?" enquired Barry.
"No, sir. I don't believe these rumours at all. They are always
flying about."
"But you say you got it over the wires?" said Barry to the
signaller.
"Yes, sir. That is, sir, of course, we get a lot of messages.
Perhaps I'm mixed up," said the signaller in very evident confusion.
"And you haven't heard anything, Monroe?" said Barry.
"No, sir, not a thing, and I think I would have heard if there had
been any truth in it."
Something in the childlike expression of innocence upon Monroe's
face wakened Barry's suspicion.
"Look here, Monroe," he said, "don't lie to me. Now, I'm talking
to you as your chaplain. Tell me the truth. Have you heard of the
battalion going in to-morrow?"
Under Barry's eye Monroe began to squirm.
"Well, sir, to tell you the truth, I did hear a rumour of that
kind."
"And you?" said Barry, turning upon the signaller, "tell me the
truth."
"Well, sir, it's just as I said. We had it over the wires. The
battalion is going in."
"Very well, get my stuff, Monroe," said Barry, quietly. "I'm going
back."
"I beg your pardon, sir."
"Do you hear me? Get my stuff; I'm not going out to-night."
Barry's tone admitted no further talk, and Monroe, swearing deeply at
his friend the signaller and at his own stupidity, and especially at
his own "lack of nerve to see his lie through," hunted out Barry's
baggage and stood ready for his officer to return.
"Hello, Dunbar," said the major, as he saw Barry about to mount his
horse. "What's up? Forgotten something? You'll surely miss your
train."
"I'm not going," said Barry briefly, getting himself settled in his
saddle.
"Not going!" exclaimed the major. "What do you mean? I thought
you were on leave."
"Changed my mind," said Barry cheerfully.
"I say, old man," said the major, "there may be nothing in what I
told you about the push. Anyway, you know we cannot postpone our
leave until all the fighting is over."
"Oh, that's all right," replied Barry. "There are lots of you
combatant chaps in a battalion, but there is only one chaplain."
"Oh, hang it all," cried the major, "take your leave. Well,"
seeing that Barry paid no heed to his advice, "the best of luck, old
man," he said, offering his hand. "I guess you're all right after
all."
The exhilaration that had sustained Barry during the evening
suddenly fled, leaving him flat in spirit and limp in body. What he
wanted most of all was sleep, and morning was not so far away. He rode
back to his hut, and, bidding Monroe let him sleep all day, he tumbled
into bed and knew nothing until late in the afternoon. Monroe, too,
had slept in, and, after rising, had been busy about the hut, so that
he had no further information as to the battalion's movements. The
chaplain's hut was some distance from Headquarters and from the
battalion camp. Hence it came that while Barry was writing hard at
his letters throughout the remainder of the afternoon, he was quite
unaware of what was taking place. Monroe, however, returned about six
o'clock to say that the battalion had